Misplaced Pages

Turkic peoples: Difference between revisions

Article snapshot taken from Wikipedia with creative commons attribution-sharealike license. Give it a read and then ask your questions in the chat. We can research this topic together.
Browse history interactively← Previous editContent deleted Content addedVisualWikitext
Revision as of 14:07, 4 March 2005 view source209.221.112.72 (talk) "Turkish World" and "Pan-Turkism"← Previous edit Latest revision as of 15:18, 24 December 2024 view source CommonsDelinker (talk | contribs)Bots, Template editors1,014,176 edits Replacing Babur_and_Humayun.jpg with File:Humayun_(left)_with_his_father_Babur_(right),_painted_circa_1640_(Late_Shah_Jahan_Album).jpg (by CommonsDelinker because: File renamed: [[:c:COM:FR#FR2|Criterion 
Line 1: Line 1:
{{Short description|Family of ethnic groups of Eurasia}}
The '''Turkic people''' are any of various peoples whose members speak languages in the ] family of languages. These people, possibly numbering 150 million in population, are probably the diverse descendants of large groups of tribespeople who originated in ].
{{Distinguish|Turkish people}}
{{Pp-extended|small=yes}}
{{Use dmy dates|date=April 2024}}
{{Infobox ethnic group
| image = Turkic Languages distribution map.png
| caption = The distribution of the ]
| population = Over 170 million{{sfn|Yunusbayev et al.|2015|p=}}
| region1 = {{flagcountry|Turkey}}
| pop1 = 60,000,000–65,000,000<ref name=Garibova2011>{{citation|last=Garibova|first=Jala|year=2011|chapter=A Pan-Turkic Dream: Language Unification of Turks|title=Handbook of Language and Ethnic Identity: The Success-Failure Continuum in Language and Ethnic Identity Efforts|editor1-last=Fishman|editor1-first=Joshua|editor2-last=Garcia|editor-first2=Ofelia|chapter-url=https://books.google.com/books?id=oUydX_3rG0AC&dq=60+million+ethnic+Turks+living+in+its+territories&pg=PA268|publisher=]|page=268|quote=Approximately 200 million people,... speak nearly 40 Turkic languages and dialects. Turkey is the largest Turkic state, with about 60 million ethnic Turks living in its territories.|isbn=978-0-19-983799-1}}</ref><ref name=Hobbs2017>{{citation|last=Hobbs|first=Joseph J.|year=2017|title=Fundamentals of World Regional Geography|url=https://books.google.com/books?id=0rUaCgAAQBAJ&dq=The+greatest+are+the+65+million+Turks+of+Turkey&pg=PA223|publisher=]|quote=The greatest are the 65 million Turks of Turkey, who speak Turkish, a Turkic language...|page=223|isbn=978-1-305-85495-6}}</ref>
| region2 = {{flagcountry|Uzbekistan}}
| pop2 = 31,900,000<ref name="cia2">{{cite web|url=https://www.gazeta.uz/oz/2021/08/19/population/
|title=Uzbekistan
|work=Statistics Committee of the Republic of Uzbekistan |date=19 August 2021 |access-date=13 February 2022}} "Population: 34,600,000 (January 2021 est.)" "Ethnic groups: Uzbek 84.6%, Russian 2.1%, Tajik 4.9%, Kazakh 2.4%, Karakalpak 2.2%, other 4.1% (2021 est.)" Assuming Uzbek, Kazakh and Karakalpak are included as Turks, 84.6% + 2.4% + 2.2% = 89.2%. 89.2% of 34.6m = 31.9m</ref>{{Additional citation needed|date=August 2018|reason=derived data not explicitly mentioning Turkic ethnicity}}
| region3 = {{flagcountry|Iran}}
| pop3 = 15,000,000–20,000,000<ref name="eb">{{cite encyclopedia|url=http://www.britannica.com/EBchecked/topic/46833/Azerbaijani|title=Azerbaijani (people)|encyclopedia=Encyclopædia Britannica|access-date=24 January 2012}} (15 million)</ref><ref>], (2009). ''Nationalism in Late and Post-Communist Europe'', p. 293 (20 mil)</ref> (18% of population<ref>Library of Congress – Federal Research Division – Country Profile: Iran, May 2008, page 5 </ref>)
| region4 = {{flagcountry|Russia}}
| pop4 = 12,751,502{{citation needed|date=August 2018}}
| region5 = {{flagcountry|Kazakhstan}}
| pop5 = 12,300,000<ref name="cia4">{{cite web|url=https://www.cia.gov/the-world-factbook/countries/kazakhstan/ |title=Kazakhstan |work=The World Factbook |access-date=21 December 2014}} "Population: 17,948,816 (July 2014 est.)" "Ethnic groups: Kazakh (Qazaq) 63.1%, Russian 23.7%, Uzbek 2.9%, Ukrainian 2.1%, Uighur 1.4%, Tatar 1.3%, German 1.1%, other 4.4% (2009 est.)" Assuming Kazakh, Uzbek, Uighur and Tatar are included as Turks, 63.1% + 2.9% + 1.4% + 1.3% = 68.7%. 68.7% of 17.9m = 12.3m</ref>{{Additional citation needed|date=August 2018|reason=derived data not explicitly mentioning Turkic ethnicity}}
| region6 = {{flagcountry|China}}
| pop6 = 13,500,000<ref name="cia5">{{cite web|url=https://www.cia.gov/the-world-factbook/countries/china/ |title=China |work=The World Factbook |access-date=13 May 2014}}</ref>{{Additional citation needed|date=August 2018|reason=derived data not explicitly mentioning Turkic ethnicity}}
| region7 = {{flagcountry|Azerbaijan}}
| pop7 = 10,000,000<ref name="cia6">{{cite web|url=https://www.cia.gov/the-world-factbook/countries/azerbaijan/ |title=Azerbaijan |work=The World Factbook |access-date=30 July 2016}} "Population: 9,780,780 (July 2015 est.)"</ref>{{Additional citation needed|date=August 2018|reason=derived data not explicitly mentioning Turkic ethnicity}}
| region8 = {{flagicon|European Union}} ]
| pop8 = 5,876,318{{citation needed|date=September 2017}} (] 508,375<ref name="2021 census">{{Cite web |url=https://sofiaglobe.com/2022/11/24/nsi-84-6-of-population-define-themselves-as-bulgarians-8-4-turks-4-4-roma/ |title=Census 2021: 84.6% of population define themselves as Bulgarians, 8.4% Turks, 4.4% Roma|date=24 November 2022 }}</ref>)
| region9 = {{flagcountry|Afghanistan}}
| pop9 = 4,600,000–5,300,000 (2017)<ref name="cia9">{{cite web|url=https://www.cia.gov/the-world-factbook/countries/afghanistan/|title=Afghanistan |work=The World Factbook |access-date=13 May 2014}}</ref><ref>{{cite web|title=Uzbeks and Turkmens – Minorities and indigenous peoples in Afghanistan|date=19 June 2015 |url=https://minorityrights.org/minorities/uzbeks-and-turkmens/|publisher=World Directory of Minorities and Indigenous Peoples}}</ref>
| region10 = {{flagcountry|Turkmenistan}}
| pop10 = 4,233,600<ref>{{cite book |last1=Turner |first1=B. |title=The Statesman's Yearbook 2007: The Politics, Cultures and Economies of the World |date=7 February 2017 |publisher=Springer |isbn=978-0-230-27135-7 |page=1238 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=zzQUDgAAQBAJ&pg=PA1238 |language=en}}</ref><ref>{{cite book |last1=Leitner |first1=Gerhard |last2=Hashim |first2=Azirah |last3=Wolf |first3=Hans-Georg |title=Communicating with Asia: The Future of English as a Global Language |date=11 January 2016 |publisher=Cambridge University Press |isbn=978-1-107-06261-0 |page=241 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=ib0wCwAAQBAJ&pg=PA241 |language=en}}</ref><ref>{{cite book |last1=Dresser |first1=Norine |title=Multicultural Manners: Essential Rules of Etiquette for the 21st Century |date=7 January 2011 |publisher=Wiley |isbn=978-1-118-04028-7 |page=270 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=BTqGEAAAQBAJ&pg=PT270 |language=en}}</ref>{{NoteTag|Figure combines population of Turkmen and Uzbeks only. Population estimates of Turkmenistan's minority groups often widely vary. Some sources have cast doubt on the reliability of official government data for minority population figures.<ref>{{cite news |title=Unpublished Census Provides Rare and Unvarnished Look at Turkmenistan |url=https://jamestown.org/program/unpublished-census-provides-rare-and-unvarnished-look-at-turkmenistan/ |website=Jamestown}}</ref><ref>{{cite news |title=First (actual) demographic data for Turkmenistan released |url=https://www.asianews.it/news-en/First-(actual)-demographic-data-for-Turkmenistan-released-33436.html |work=www.asianews.it |language=en}}</ref>}}
| region11 = {{flagcountry|Kyrgyzstan}}
| pop11 = 4,500,000<ref name="cia8">{{cite web|url=https://www.cia.gov/the-world-factbook/countries/kyrgyzstan/ |title=Kyrgyzstan |work=The World Factbook |access-date=13 May 2014}}</ref>{{Additional citation needed|date=August 2018|reason=derived data not explicitly mentioning Turkic ethnicity}}
| region12 = {{flagcountry|Iraq}}
| pop12 = 3,000,000<ref name="Triana">{{citation |last=Triana|first=María|year=2017|title=Managing Diversity in Organizations: A Global Perspective|publisher=]|isbn=978-1-317-42368-3|page=168}}</ref><ref name=Bassem2016>{{cite web|last=Bassem|first=Wassim|year=2016|title=Iraq's Turkmens call for independent province|url=http://www.al-monitor.com/pulse/originals/2016/10/turkmens-iraq-mosul-tal-afar.html|publisher=]|archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20161017222707/http://www.al-monitor.com/pulse/originals/2016/10/turkmens-iraq-mosul-tal-afar.html|archive-date=17 October 2016}}</ref>
| region13 = {{flagcountry|Tajikistan}}
| pop13 = 1,200,000<ref name="cia11">{{cite web|url=https://www.cia.gov/the-world-factbook/countries/tajikistan/ |title=Tajikistan |work=The World Factbook |access-date=13 May 2014}}</ref>{{Additional citation needed|date=August 2018|reason=derived data not explicitly mentioning Turkic ethnicity}}
| region14 = {{flagcountry|United States}}
| pop14 = 1,000,000+<ref>{{cite web|url=http://m.stlamerican.com/reader_interaction/letters_to_the_editor/article_a906f9d6-4a8f-11e0-9d87-001cc4c03286.html|title=Obama, recognize us|work=St. Louis American|access-date=18 March 2015|archive-date=5 September 2014|archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20140905004354/http://m.stlamerican.com/reader_interaction/letters_to_the_editor/article_a906f9d6-4a8f-11e0-9d87-001cc4c03286.html}}</ref>
| region15 = {{flagcountry|Syria}}
| pop15 = 800,000–1,000,000+<ref name="Deutsches Orient Institut">Nahost-Informationsdienst ({{ISSN|0949-1856}}): Presseausschnitte zu Politik, Wirtschaft und Gesellschaft in Nordafrika und dem Nahen und Mittleren Osten. Autors: Deutsches Orient–Institut; Deutsches Übersee–Institut. Hamburg: Deutsches Orient–Institut, 1996, seite 33.</ref>
| region16 = {{flag|Ukraine}}
| pop16 = 398,600<ref>{{cite web|url=http://2001.ukrcensus.gov.ua/eng/results/general/nationality/|title=All-Ukrainian population census 2001 – General results of the census – National composition of population|work=State Statistics Committee of Ukraine|year=2003|access-date=2 September 2017}}</ref>
| region17 = {{flag|Northern Cyprus}}
| pop17 = 313,626<ref> SPO, Economic and Social Indicators 2014, pages=2–3</ref>
| region18 = {{flagcountry|Australia}}
| pop18 = 59,488<ref>{{cite book |last1=Michael |first1=Michális |title=Reconciling Cultural and Political Identities in a Globalized World: Perspectives on Australia-Turkey Relations |date=29 April 2016 |publisher=Springer |isbn=978-1-137-49315-6 |page=29 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=j42kCgAAQBAJ&pg=PT29 |language=en}}</ref> (Turkish)
| region19 = {{flagcountry|Mongolia}}
| pop19 = 135,618<ref name="cia16">{{cite web|url=https://www.cia.gov/the-world-factbook/countries/mongolia/ |title=Mongolia |work=The World Factbook |access-date=13 May 2014}}</ref><ref>{{Cite web|title=2020 POPULATION AND HOUSING CENSUS OF MONGOLIA /summary/|url=https://www.1212.mn/BookLibraryDownload.ashx?url=Census2020_Mongolia_Eng.pdf&ln=En|url-status=live|archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20210715110250/https://www.1212.mn/BookLibraryDownload.ashx?url=Census2020_Mongolia_Eng.pdf&ln=En |archive-date=15 July 2021 }}</ref>
| region20 = {{flagcountry|Lebanon}}
| pop20 = 200,000<ref name=Al-Akhbar>{{cite web|author=Al-Akhbar|title=Lebanese Turks Seek Political and Social Recognition|url=http://english.al-akhbar.com/content/lebanese-turks-seek-political-and-social-recognition|access-date=2 March 2012|archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20180620232105/https://english.al-akhbar.com/content/lebanese-turks-seek-political-and-social-recognition|archive-date=20 June 2018}}</ref><ref>{{cite web|work=Today's Zaman|title=Tension adds to existing wounds in Lebanon|url=http://www.todayszaman.com/newsDetail_getNewsById.action;jsessionid=9D641F96F47DDD54F28B8F8B07FFF815?newsId=233911|access-date=6 April 2011|archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20120111231644/http://www.todayszaman.com/newsDetail_getNewsById.action%3Bjsessionid%3D9D641F96F47DDD54F28B8F8B07FFF815?newsId=233911|archive-date=11 January 2012}}</ref><ref name=Ahmed2015>{{citation|last=Ahmed|first=Yusra|year=2015|title=Syrian Turkmen refugees face double suffering in Lebanon|url=https://en.zamanalwsl.net/news/11837.html|publisher=Zaman Al Wasl|access-date=11 October 2016|archive-date=23 August 2017|archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20170823204755/https://en.zamanalwsl.net/news/11837.html}}</ref><ref>{{cite web|work=Syrian Observer|year=2015|title=Syria's Turkmen Refugees Face Cruel Reality in Lebanon|url=http://syrianobserver.com/EN/Features/29920/Syria_Turkmen_Refugees_Face_Cruel_Reality_Lebanon|access-date= 10 October 2016}}</ref>
| region21 = {{flagcountry|Moldova}}
| pop21 = 126,010<ref>{{cite web |url=https://statistica.gov.md/public/files/publicatii_electronice/Anuar_Statistic/2017/Anuar_statistic_2017.pdf |title=2017 Anuarul Statisitc al Republicii Moldova |language=ro |publisher=Biroul Național de Statistică al Republicii Moldova |access-date=23 April 2022}}</ref>
| region22 = {{flagcountry|North Macedonia}}
| pop22 = 81,900<ref name="cia17">{{cite web|url=https://www.cia.gov/the-world-factbook/countries/north-macedonia/ |title=North Macedonia |work=The World Factbook |access-date=13 May 2014}}</ref><ref>{{cite web |url=http://www.stat.gov.mk/pdf/kniga_13.pdf |title=Census of Population, Households and Dwellings in the Republic of Macedonia, 2002 |publisher=Republic of Macedonia State Statistical Office |access-date=23 April 2022}}</ref>
| langs = ]
| rels = Mostly ] (]{{·}}])<br>
Minorities:<br>]{{·}}]{{·}}]{{·}}]{{·}}] (])
| group = Turkic peoples
| native_name =
| native_name_lang =
| related_groups =
}}


The '''Turkic peoples''' are a collection of diverse ]s of ], ], ], and ] as well as parts of ], who speak ].<ref name="Britannica_Definition">{{harvnb|Encyclopedia Britannica. Turkic peoples}}. "Turkic peoples, any of various peoples whose members speak languages belonging to the Turkic subfamily..."</ref><ref name="Yunusbayev_Definition">{{harvnb|Yunusbayev et al.|2015|p=1}}. "The Turkic peoples represent a diverse collection of ethnic groups defined by the Turkic languages."</ref>
== Nomenclature ==
The first mention of the term "Turk" which remains to this day, was by the ] in the ]. A letter by the ] written to the Göktürk khan named ] in ] describes him as "the Great Turk khan". The ] from the same time use the term "Turuk".


According to historians and linguists, the ] originated in Central-East Asia,<ref>{{harvnb|Uchiyama|Gillam|Savelyev|Ning|2020}}: "Most linguists and historians agree that Proto-Turkic, the common ancestor of all ancient and contemporary Turkic languages, must have been spoken somewhere in Central-East Asia (e.g. Róna-Tas, Reference Róna-Tas1991, p. 35; Golden, Reference Golden1992, pp. 124–127; Menges, Reference Menges1995, pp. 16–19)."</ref> potentially in ], ] or ].{{sfn|Golden|2011|pp=37–38}}<ref name="Uchiyama 2020">{{harvnb|Uchiyama|Gillam|Savelyev|Ning|2020}}: "The ultimate Proto-Turkic homeland may have been located in a more compact area, most likely in Eastern Mongolia"</ref><ref name="Lee 2017">{{harvnb|Lee|Kuang|2017}}: "The best candidate for the Turkic Urheimat would then be northern and western Mongolia and Tuva, where all these haplogroups could have intermingled, rather than eastern and southern Mongolia..."</ref> Initially, Proto-Turkic speakers were potentially both hunter-gatherers and farmers; they later became ] ].<ref>{{harvnb|Uchiyama|Gillam|Savelyev|Ning|2020}}:"To sum up, the palaeolinguistic reconstruction points to a mixed subsistence strategy and complex economy of the Proto-Turkic-speaking community. It is likely that the subsistence of the Early Proto-Turkic speakers was based on a combination of hunting–gathering and agriculture, with a later shift to nomadic pastoralism as an economy basis, partly owing to the interaction of the Late Proto-Turkic groups with the Iranian-speaking herders of the Eastern Steppe."</ref> Early and ] Turkic groups exhibited a wide range of both East Asian and West-Eurasian physical appearances and genetic origins, in part through long-term contact with neighboring peoples such as ], ], ], ] and ] peoples.<ref>
Previous use of similar terms, like those in a tablet from ] found in the ancient city of Mari near Tell Hariri in northern Iraq (which mentions that a people named "Turukku" are coming to the lands of Tiguranim and Hirbazanim), the Chinese in ] (referring to a neighbouring people as "Tu-Kiu"), or that in the ] one of the grandsons of ] is named "Turk", are of unknown significance, although some feel strongly that this is early evidence of the historical continuency of the term and the people as an ethnic (and possibly linguistic) unit.
* {{harvnb|Lee|2023|p=4}}: "It should also be noted that even the early Turkic peoples, including the Tiele and the Türks, were made up of heterogeneous elements. Importantly, DNA studies demonstrate that the expansion process of the Turkic peoples involved the Turkicization of various non-Turkic-speaking groups. The “Turks” intermixed with and Turkicized various indigenous groups across Eurasia: Uralic hunter-gatherers in northern Eurasia; Mongolic nomads in Mongolia; Indo-European-speaking nomads and sedentary populations in Xinjiang, Transoxiana, Iran, Kazakhstan, and South Siberia; and Indo-European elements (the Byzantine subjects, among others) in Anatolia and the Balkans.11"
* {{harvnb|Findley|2005|p=18}}: "Moreover, Turks do not all physically look alike. They never did. The Turks of Turkey are famous for their range of physical types. Given the Turks' ancient Inner Asian origins, it is easy to imagine that they once presented a uniform Mongoloid appearance. Such traits seem to be more characteristic in the eastern Turkic world; however, uniformity of type can never have prevailed there either. Archeological evidence indicates that Indo-Europeans, or certainly Europoid physical types, inhabited the oases of the Tarim basin, Dzungaria, and even parts of Mongolia in ancient times. In the Tarim basin, persistence of these former inhabitants' genes among the modern Uyghurs is both observable and scientifically demonstrable.32 Early Chinese sources describe the Kirghiz as blue-eyed and blond or red-haired. The genesis of Turkic ethnic groups from earliest times occurred in confederations of diverse peoples. As if to prove the point, the earliest surviving texts in Turkic languages are studded with terms from other languages."
* {{Cite journal |last=Golden |first=Peter B. |date=25 July 2018|title=The Ethnogonic Tales of the Türks |url=http://journals.sagepub.com/doi/10.1177/0971945818775373 |journal=The Medieval History Journal |language=en |volume=21 |issue=2 |pages=291–327 |doi=10.1177/0971945818775373 |s2cid=166026934 |issn=0971-9458}}"Some DNA tests point to the Iranian connections of the Ashina and Ashide,133 highlighting further that the Turks as a whole 'were made up of heterogeneous and somatically dissimilar populations'.134 Geographically, the accounts cover the regions of Inner Mongolia, Gansu, Xinjiang, the Yenisei zone and the Altay, regions with Turkic, Indo-European (Iranian and Tokharian), Yeniseic, Uralic and other populations. Wusun elements, like most steppe polities of an ethno-linguistic mix, may have also played a substratal role."
* {{harvnb|Lee|Kuang|2017}}: "Both Chinese histories and modern dna studies indicate that the early and medieval Turkic peoples were made up of heterogeneous populations"</ref>


Many vastly differing ]s have throughout history become part of the Turkic peoples through ], ], ], ], ], and ].{{sfn|Yunusbayev et al.|2015}} Nevertheless, Turkic peoples share, to varying degrees, non-linguistic characteristics like cultural traits, ancestry from a common ], and historical experiences.{{sfn|Yunusbayev et al.|2015}} Some of the most notable modern Turkic ethnic groups include the ], ], ], ], ], ], ], ], ], ], ], and ].
The most common popular explanation in present-day Turkey regarding the root of the word "Turk" is that it means "strong" or "powerful". Also in the 16. century the ] believed that "Turk" also meant: "He who has reached the most mature stage/stage of perfection" ('kemâle ermi&#351;')


== Etymology ==
The English term "Turkic" is nowadays mainly used to describe the languages and peoples of the whole area while the term "Turkish" is commonly seen as referring to the peoples and language of modern ] and some of the ethnically and culturally particularly close peoples and ethnic minorities in surrounding countries. Some feel that this is an artificial distinction and claim that the Turkic languages do not make themselves this distinction. However, in modern Turkish, the term Türk refers to Turkish people and culture, while the term Türki refers to Turkic people and cultures. They also claim that much of the separation is the product of ], and that prior to the founding of the ] the term ] was used to describe all Turkic people which by similarity in language and culture are seen as united and part of a greater family of peoples. Others are worried that much of this debate is used as a support to the racial theories of ], pointing out that the cultural, religious, historical, political, and even racial differences are too big for speaking of a unity.
]'s '']'' (11th century), showing the distribution of Turkic tribes.]]
] (AD 684–731), prince of the ], found in ], ], ] valley. ].]]
The first known mention of the term ''Turk'' (]: 𐱅𐰇𐰼𐰰 ''Türük'' or 𐱅𐰇𐰼𐰰:𐰜𐰇𐰛 ''Kök Türük'', {{zh|突厥}}, ]: Tūjué < ] *''tɦut-kyat'' < *''dwət-kuɑt'', ]: ''drugu'')<ref name="KulteginMC">{{cite web| url = http://irq.kaznpu.kz/?lang=e&mod=1&tid=1&oid=15&m=1| title = Kultegin's Memorial Complex, TÜRIK BITIG}} ]</ref><ref name="TonyukukMC">{{cite web| url = http://irq.kaznpu.kz/?lang=e&mod=1&tid=1&oid=17&m=1| title = Tonyukuk's Memorial Complex, TÜRIK BITIG}} ]</ref><ref>{{cite journal|last=Golden|first= Peter B.|title=The Ethnogonic Tales of the Türks|journal=The Medieval History Journal |doi=10.1177/0971945818775373|pages= 291–327|date=25 July 2018|volume= 21|issue= 2|s2cid= 166026934 | issn = 0971-9458}}</ref>{{sfn|Golden|2011|loc=''Ethnogenesis in the tribal zone: The Shaping of the Turks''}} applied to only one Turkic group, namely, the ],<ref>{{cite journal|first= Joo-Yup|last= Lee|title= The Historical Meaning of the Term Turk and the Nature of the Turkic Identity of the Chinggisid and Timurid Elites in Post-Mongol Central Asia|journal= Central Asiatic Journal |volume=59 |issue=1–2|pages= 103–108|year= 2016}}</ref> who were also mentioned, as ''türüg'' ~ ''török'', in the 6th-century ], most likely not later than 587 AD.<ref>{{cite journal|url=https://www.academia.edu/34589694|title=The Khüis Tolgoi inscription – signs and sounds|first=Dieter |last=Maue|website=Academia.edu|access-date=4 November 2018}}</ref><ref>{{cite journal|url=https://www.academia.edu/34550816|title=Interpretation of the Hüis Tolgoi Inscription|first=Alexander|last=Vovin|website=Academia.edu|access-date=4 November 2018}}</ref><ref>{{cite journal|url=https://www.academia.edu/39716045|last= Vivin|first=Alexander|title= A Sketch of the Earliest Mongolic Language: the Brāhmī Bugut and Khüis Tolgoi Inscriptions|journal= International Journal of Eurasian Linguistics|issue= 1|year= 2019|volume= 1|pages= 162–197|doi= 10.1163/25898833-12340008|s2cid= 198833565}}</ref> A letter by ] to ] in 585 described him as "the Great Turk Khan".<ref>{{cite book|url=https://books.google.com/books?id=pCiNqFj3MQsC&q=Chinese+texts+from+585+mentioning+Ishbara+as+%E2%80%9Cthe+Great+Turk+Khan%E2%80%9D.+828+Turkic+peoples&pg=PA828|access-date=24 June 2020|title=Encyclopedia of the Peoples of Asia and Oceania, p. 826|isbn=978-1-4381-1913-7|last1=West|first1=Barbara A.|date=19 May 2010|publisher=Infobase }}</ref><ref>{{cite web|url=http://newasia.proj.hkedcity.net/resources/25/beishi/index.phtml?section_num=099|title=新亞研究所 – 典籍資料庫|access-date=18 March 2015|archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20140221113517/http://newasia.proj.hkedcity.net/resources/25/beishi/index.phtml?section_num=099|archive-date=21 February 2014}}</ref> The ] (584 CE) and ] (735 CE) use the terms ''Türküt'', ''Türk'' and ''Türük''.<ref>Moriyasu & Ochir 1999, p. 123</ref>

During the first century CE, ] refers to the ''Turcae'' in the forests north of the ], and ] lists the ''Tyrcae'' among the people of the same area.<ref>Pliny, ''Natural History'' – Harvard University Press, vol. II (Libri III-VII); reprinted 1961, p. 351</ref><ref>Pomponius Mela's Description of the World, Pomponius Mela, University of Michigan Press, 1998, p. 67</ref><ref>Prof. Dr. Ercümend Kuran, Türk Adı ve Türklük Kavramı, Türk Kültürü Dergisi, Yıl, XV, S. 174, Nisan 1977. s. 18–20.</ref> However, English archaeologist ] contended that ''Tyrcae'' Τῦρκαι is "a false correction" for '']'' Ἱύρκαι, a people who dwelt beyond the ], according to ] (], iv. 22), and were likely ] ancestors of ].<ref>{{cite EB1911|wstitle=Iyrcae |page= 102 |volume= 15 |last= Minns|first= Ellis Hovell}}</ref> There are references to certain groups in antiquity whose names might have been foreign transcriptions of ''Tür(ü)k'', such as ], ''Turukha''/''Turuška'', ] and so on; but the information gap is so substantial that any connection of these ancient people to the modern Turks is not possible.<ref>Peter B. Golden, Introduction to the History of the Turkic People, p. 12: "... source (Herod.IV.22) and other authors of antiquity, Togarma of the Old Testament, Turukha/Turuska of Indic sources, Turukku of Assyrian..."</ref><ref>German Archaeological Institute. Department Teheran, ''Archaeologische Mitteilungen aus Iran'', Vol. 19, Dietrich Reimer, 1986, p. 90</ref>

The Chinese ] (7th century) presents an etymology of the name ''Turk'' as derived from 'helmet', explaining that this name comes from the shape of a mountain where they worked in the ].<ref>Sinor, Cambridge History of Early Inner Asia, Page 295</ref> Hungarian scholar ] (1991) pointed to a Khotanese-Saka word, ''tturakä'' 'lid', semantically stretchable to 'helmet', as a possible source for this folk etymology, yet Golden thinks this connection requires more data.<ref name="Golden2006">{{cite journal|last = Golden|first= Peter B.|title= Türks and Iranians: Aspects of Türk and Khazaro-Iranian Interaction|journal= Turcologica|issue= 105|page= 25}}</ref>

It is generally accepted that the name ''Türk'' is ultimately derived from the ] migration-term<ref>(Bŭlgarska akademii︠a︡ na naukite. Otdelenie za ezikoznanie/ izkustvoznanie/ literatura, Linguistique balkanique, Vol. 27–28, 1984, p. 17</ref> 𐱅𐰇𐰼𐰰 ''Türük''/''Törük'',<ref name="Nisanyan"> in ''Turkish Etymological Dictionary'', Sevan Nişanyan.</ref> which means 'created, born'<ref>Faruk Suümer, Oghuzes (Turkmens): History, Tribal organization, Sagas, Turkish World Research Foundation, 1992, p. 16)</ref> or 'strong'.<ref>'']'' (2000). . bartleby.com. Retrieved 7 December 2006.</ref> Turkologist Peter B. Golden agrees that the term ''Turk'' has roots in ],<ref>Golden, Peter B. "Some Thoughts on the Origins of the Turks and the Shaping of the Turkic Peoples". (2006) In: . Ed. Victor H. Mair. University of Hawaiʻi Press. p. 143.</ref> yet is not convinced by attempts to link ''Dili'', ''Dingling'', ''Chile'', ''Tele'', and ''Tiele'', which possibly transcribed *''tegrek'' (probably meaning ']'), to ''Tujue'', which transliterated to ''Türküt''.<ref>Golden, Peter B. (1992), ''An Introduction to the History of the Turkic Peoples'', p. 93-95</ref>

Scholars, including Toru Haneda, Onogawa Hidemi, and Geng Shimin believed that ''Di'', ''Dili'', ''Dingling'', ''Chile'' and ''Tujue'' all came from the Turkic word ''Türk'', which means 'powerful' and 'strength', and its plural form is ''Türküt''.<ref>T. Allsen, P. B. Golden, R. K. Kovalev, and A. P. Martinez (2012), ''ARCHIVUM EURASIAEMEDII AEV'', p. 85</ref> Even though ] supports the proposal that ''türk'' means 'strong' in general, ] points out that "the word ''türk'' is never used in the generalized sense of 'strong'" and that ''türk'' was originally a noun and meant "'the culminating point of maturity' (of a fruit, human being, etc.), but more often used as an meaning (of a fruit) 'just fully ripe'; (of a human being) 'in the prime of life, young, and vigorous'".<ref>Clauson, G. ''An Etymological Dictionary of Pre-13th Century Turkish'' (1972). p. 542-543</ref> Hakan Aydemir (2022) also contends that ''Türk'' originally did not mean "strong, powerful" but "gathered; united, allied, confederated" and was derived from Pre-] verb *''türü'' "heap up, collect, gather, assemble".<ref>{{cite book|first= Hakan|last= Aydemir|date= 2–3 December 2022|chapter= TÜRK Adının Kökeni Üzerine (On the origin of the ethnonym TÜRK 'Turkic, Turkish') + an English abstract|title= Türk Dunyası Sosyal Bilimler - Sempozyumu|publisher= Ege University|location= İzmir|editor-last1= Şahin|editor-first1= İbrahim|editor-last2= Akgün|editor-first2= Atıf|chapter-url=https://www.academia.edu/100924309|language= tr}}</ref>

The earliest Turkic-speaking peoples identifiable in Chinese sources are the ] and ], located in South Siberia.<ref>The Peoples of the Steppe Frontier in Early Chinese Sources, Edwin G. Pulleyblank, page 35</ref>{{sfn|Golden|2011|p=27}}{{NoteTag|The Xueyantuo were first known as ''Xinli'' 薪犁, later '']'' 薛 in the 7th century;<ref name="Pulleyblank p. VII">Pulleyblank, "Central Asia and Non-Chinese Peoples of Ancient China", p. VII 21–26.</ref><ref name="Duan p. 370">Duan, "Dingling, Gaoju and Tiele", p. 370.</ref> the Yenisei Kyrgyz were first known as ''Gekun'' (鬲昆) or ''Jiankun'' (堅昆), later known as ''Jiegu'' (結骨), ''Hegu'' (紇骨), ''Hegusi'' (紇扢斯), ''Hejiasi'' (紇戛斯), ''Hugu'' (護骨), ''Qigu'' (契骨), ''Juwu'' (居勿), and ''Xiajiasi'' (黠戛斯), all being transcriptions of ].<ref>Theobald, Ulrich (2012). for ''ChinaKnowledge.de – An Encyclopaedia on Chinese History, Literature and Art''</ref><ref>Pulleyblank, Edwin G. "The Name of the Kirghiz" in ''Central Asiatic Journal'', Vol. 34, No. 1/2 (1990). Harrassowitz Verlag. page 98-99 of 98–108.</ref>}} Another example of an early Turkic population would be the ].<ref>Hyun Jin Kim: . Cambridge University Press, 2013. pp.175–176.</ref><ref>{{harvnb|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=200|ps= "Historians know with certainty that the Dingling were a Turkic people"}}</ref><ref>Xu Elina-Qian, , University of Helsinki, 2005. p. 176.</ref>

In Late Antiquity itself, as well as in and the ], the name "Scythians" was used in ] and ] literature for various groups of nomadic "]s" living on the Pontic-Caspian Steppe who were not related to the actual Scythians.<ref name="Application">{{harvnb|Dickens|2018|p=1346}}: "Greek authors frequently applied the name Scythians to later nomadic groups who had no relation whatever to the original Scythians"</ref>{{sfn|Ivantchik|2018}} Medieval European chroniclers subsumed various Turkic peoples of the Eurasian steppe as "Scythians". Between 400 CE and the 16th century, Byzantine sources use the name Σκύθαι (''Skuthai'') in reference to twelve different Turkic peoples.<ref name="G. Moravcsik, p. 236-39">G. Moravcsik, ''Byzantinoturcica'' II, p. 236–39</ref>

In the modern Turkish language as used in the Republic of Turkey, a distinction is made between "Turks" and the "Turkic peoples" in loosely speaking: the term ''Türk'' corresponds specifically to the "Turkish-speaking" people (in this context, "Turkish-speaking" is considered the same as "Turkic-speaking"), while the term '']'' refers generally to the people of modern "Turkic Republics" (''Türki Cumhuriyetler'' or ''Türk Cumhuriyetleri''). However, the proper usage of the term is based on ] in order to avoid any ] sense. In short, the term ''Türki'' can be used for ''Türk'' or vice versa.<ref>], ''Historie des Turks – Deux mille ans du Pacifique á la Méditerranée''. ], 2000.</ref>

== List of ethnic groups ==
{| class="wikitable sortable"
|+ List of modern Turkic peoples
|-
! Ethnonym || Population || Region(s) || Religion
|-
|]|| 60,000,000–65,000,000 || {{flag|Turkey}}, {{Flag|Northern Cyprus}} || ], ]
|-
|]|| 31,300,000 || {{flag|Azerbaijan}}, {{flagcountry|Dagestan}} (Russian Federation) ||], ]
|-
|]|| 30,700,000 || {{flag|Uzbekistan}} || ]
|-
|]|| 15,193,000 || {{flag|Kazakhstan}}, {{flagicon|Mongolia}} ], {{flagicon|China}} ], ], ], {{flagcountry|Altai Republic}}||]
|-
|]|| 11,900,000 || {{flagicon|China}} ] Uyghur Autonomous Region (PRC) ||]
|-
|]|| 8,000,000 || {{flag|Turkmenistan}} || ]
|-
|]|| 6,200,000 || {{flagcountry|Tatarstan}} (Russian Federation)|| ], ]
|-
|]|| 6,000,000 || {{flag|Kyrgyzstan}}, {{flagicon|China}} ]||]
|-
|]|| 1,700,000 || {{flagcountry|Bashkortostan}} (Russian Federation)|| ]
|-
|]|| 1,500,000 || {{flagcountry|Chuvashia}} (Russian Federation)|| ], ]
|-
|]|| 1,000,000 || rowspan="2" | N/A || ]
|-
|]|| 949,000 || ]
|-
|]|| 796,000 || {{flag|Karakalpakstan}} (Uzbekistan)|| ]
|-
|]|| 520,000 || {{flagcountry|Dagestan}} (Russian Federation)|| ]
|-
|]|| <500,000 ||
{{flagcountry|Crimea}} (] by Ukraine and Russia)
|| ]
|-
|] (Sakha)|| 482,000 || {{flagicon|Sakha Republic}} ] or Yakutia (Russian Federation) || ], ]
|-
|]|| 346,000 || {{flagcountry|Karachay-Cherkessia}} (Russian Federation) || ]
|-
|]|| 273,000 || {{flagcountry|Tuva}} (Russian Federation)
|| ], ]
|-
|]|| 126,000 || {{flagicon|Gagauzia}} ] (Moldova)|| ]
|-
|]|| 112,000 || {{flagcountry|Kabardino-Balkaria}} (Russian Federation) || ]
|-
|]|| 110,000 || {{flagcountry|Dagestan}} and {{flagcountry|Karachay-Cherkessia}} (Russian Federation) || ]
|-
|]|| 104,000 || {{flagicon|China}} ], ]
|| ], ]
|-
|]|| 75,000 || {{flagcountry|Khakassia}} (Russian Federation)
|| ], ]
|-
|]|| 74,000 || {{flagcountry|Altai Republic}} (Russian Federation)
|| ], ], ]
|-
|]|| >60,000 || rowspan="2" | N/A || ]
|-
|]|| 42,000 || ]
|-
|]s|| 13,000 ||
{{flagicon|China}} ]
|| ], ]
|-
|]|| 13,000 ||
] ] (Russian Federation)
|| ], ]
|-
|]|| 10,000 || rowspan="17" | N/A || ]
|-
|] || 8,000 || ]
|-
|]|| 8,000 || ], ]
|-
|]|| 6,000 || ]
|-
|] || 3,700 || ], ], ]
|-
|]s|| 3,600
|| ], ]
|-
|]|| 2,900 || ], ]
|-
|]|| 2,700 || ], ]
|-
|]|| 2,000 || ]
|-
|] || 1,900 || ], ]
|-
|]|| 1,400 || ]
|-
|] || 1,100 || ], ], ]
|-
|]|| 1,000 || ]
|-
|]s|| 800 || ], ]
|-
|]|| 355 || ]
|-
|]||282 || ]
|-
|]|| 177 || ]
|}

; Historical Turkic groups
{{div col|colwidth=15em}}
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ] (from Shatuo)
* ]
* ]
* ]s
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]{{NoteTag|] quote: "悅般國 其風俗言語與高車同" translation: "Yueban nation Their customs and language are the same as the Gaoche"; Gaoche (高車; lit. "High-Carts") was another name of the Turkic-speaking Tiele}}
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]s
* ] (partly)<ref name="Vryonis305">Vryonis, Speros. ''Studies on Byzantium, Seljuks, and Ottomans: Reprinted Studies''. Undena Publications, 1981, {{ISBN|0-89003-071-5}}, p. 305. "The origins of the Karamanlides have long been disputed, there being two basic theories on the subject. According to one, they are the remnants of the Greek-speaking Byzantine population which, though it remained Orthodox, was linguistically Turkified. The second theory holds that they were originally Turkish soldiers which the Byzantine emperors had settled in Anatolia in large numbers and who retained their language and Christian religion after the Turkish conquests..."</ref><ref>{{harvnb|Baydar|2016|p=21}}</ref>
* ] (partly)
* ] (partly)<ref name="grousset">
R. Grousset, ''The Empire of the Steppes'', New Brunswick, NJ, Rutgers University Press, 1970, p191.
</ref><ref>
Moffett, ''A History of Christianity in Asia'' pp. 400-401.
</ref>
* ] (partly){{NoteTag|Merkits were always counted as a part of the Mongols within the Mongol Empire, however, some scholars proposed additional Turkic ancestry for Merkits; Christopher P. Atwood – ''Encyclopedia of Mongolia and the Mongol Empire'' {{ISBN|978-0-8160-4671-3}}, Facts on File, Inc. 2004.}}
* ] (partly){{NoteTag|Refers to forest peoples of the North, including the Turkic-speaking ] and ], and also Mongolic-speaking ]. The ethnonym Uriankhai is etymologically Mongolic, compare ] ''uria(n)'' "war motto" and ''khai'', ] of '']''. Uriankhai people are possibly linked to the Wuluohun tribe of the ], who were predominantly Mongolic-speaking.}}

{{div col end}}

Possible Proto-Turkic ancestry, at least partial,{{sfn|Encyclopedia Britannica. Turkic peoples}}<ref name="Pritsak O 1982">] & ]: ''Khazarian Hebrew Documents of the Tenth Century'', Ithaca: Cornell Univ. Press, 1982.</ref><ref>" {{webarchive|url=https://web.archive.org/web/20130922063332/http://education.yahoo.com/reference/encyclopedia/entry/Timur |date=2013-09-22 }}", The '']'', Sixth Edition, 2001–05, ].</ref><ref>'']'' article: , Online Edition, 2007.</ref><ref>{{cite book|last1=Walton|first1=Linda|title=World History: Journeys from Past to Present|page=210|date=2013|publisher=Routledge |isbn=978-1-135-08828-6 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=Os-g5vLFfBcC&dq=tabgach+turkic&pg=PA210}}</ref><ref>Peter Benjamin Golden, (1992), ''An Introduction to the History of the Turkic Peoples'', p. 110</ref> has been posited for ], ] and ], as well as ] and ], who were of ] ] ancestry.<ref>*Pulleyblank, Edwin G. (2000). , ''Early China''. p. 20</ref><ref>]. '']''. Vol. 1</ref><ref>{{cite thesis|type= PhD|last= Tseng|first= Chin Yin|title= The Making of the Tuoba Northern Wei: Constructing Material Cultural Expressions in the Northern Wei Pingcheng Period (398–494 CE)|year= 2012|publisher= University of Oxford|page= 1}}</ref><ref>]. '']''. vol. 91 "蠕蠕,東胡之苗裔也,姓郁久閭氏。" tr. "Rúrú, offsprings of Dōnghú, surnamed Yùjiŭlǘ"</ref> as well as ], Rourans' supposed descendants.<ref>'']''. vol 95. "芮芮一號大檀,又號檀檀,亦匈奴別種" tr. "Ruìruì, one appellation is Dàtán, also called Tántán, likewise a Xiōngnú splinter stock"</ref><ref>Xu Elina-Qian, , University of Helsinki, 2005. p. 179-180</ref>{{NoteTag|Even though Chinese historians routinely ascribed Xiongnu origin to various nomadic peoples, such ascriptions do not necessarily indicate the subjects' exact origins; for examples, Xiongnu ancestry was ascribed to Turkic-speaking Göktürks and Tiele as well as Para-Mongolic-speaking Kumo Xi and Khitan.<ref>{{cite journal|first= Joo-Yup|last= Lee|title= The Historical Meaning of the Term Turk and the Nature of the Turkic Identity of the Chinggisid and Timurid Elites in Post-Mongol Central Asia|journal= Central Asiatic Journal |volume=59 |issue=1–2|page= 105|year= 2016}}</ref>}}

=== Remarks ===
{{NoteFoot}}

== Language ==
{{Main|Turkic languages|Proto-Turkic language}}
{{Further|List of alphabets used by Turkic languages}}

=== Distribution ===
]
The Turkic languages constitute a ] of some 30 languages, spoken across a vast area from ] and the ], to ] and ] and through to the Middle East. Some 170 million people have a Turkic language as their native language;<ref name=distribution> entries provide the information on the Turkic-speaking populations and regions.</ref> an additional 20 million people speak a Turkic language as a ]. The Turkic language with the greatest number of speakers is ], or ]n Turkish, the speakers of which account for about 40% of all Turkic speakers.<ref name="LanguagesOfTheWorld">{{cite book|title=Languages of the World, Third Edition|last=Katzner|first=Kenneth|author-link=Kenneth Katzner|date=March 2002|publisher=Routledge, an imprint of Taylor & Francis Books Ltd.|isbn=978-0-415-25004-7}}</ref> More than one third of these are ethnic ], dwelling predominantly in Turkey proper and formerly ]-dominated areas of Southern and Eastern Europe and ]; as well as in Western Europe, Australia and the Americas as a result of immigration. The remainder of the Turkic people are concentrated in Central Asia, Russia, the ], China, and northern Iraq.

The Turkic language family was traditionally considered to be part of the proposed ].<ref>, '']'', Online Academic Edition, 2008</ref> Howeover since the 1950s, a majority of linguists have rejected the proposal, after supposed ]s were found not to be valid, hypothesized sound shifts were not found, and Turkic and ] were found to be converging rather than diverging over the centuries. Opponents of the theory proposed that the similarities are due to ] between the groups concerned.<ref>Lyle Campbell and Mauricio J. Mixco (2007): ''A Glossary of Historical Linguistics''; University of Utah Press. Page 7.</ref><ref>Johanna Nichols (1992) ''Linguistic Diversity in Space and Time''. Chicago University Press. Page 4.</ref><ref>R. M. W. Dixon (1997): ''The Rise and Fall of Languages''. Cambridge University Press. Page 32.</ref><ref name=perel2012>Asya Pereltsvaig (2012) ''Languages of the World, An Introduction''. Cambridge University Press. Pages 211–216.</ref><ref>{{cite journal |last=De la Fuente |first=José Andrés Alonso |year=2016 |title=Review of Robbeets, Martine (2015): Diachrony of verb morphology. Japanese and the Transeurasian languages |journal=Diachronica |volume=33 |issue=4 |pages=530–537 |doi=10.1075/dia.33.4.04alo |url=https://www.academia.edu/30240029}}</ref>

=== Alphabet ===
]". The ] was designed in order to help ] ] communicate with the ].]]
The Turkic alphabets are sets of related alphabets with letters (formerly known as ]), used for writing mostly ]. Inscriptions in Turkic alphabets were found in ]. Most of the preserved inscriptions were dated to between 8th and 10th centuries CE.

The earliest positively dated and read Turkic inscriptions date from the 8th century, and the alphabets were generally replaced by the ] in the ] and ], Arabic script in the Middle and Western Asia, ] in Eastern Europe and in the Balkans, and ] in Central Europe. The latest recorded use of ] was recorded in Central Europe's Hungary in 1699 CE.

The Turkic ] scripts, unlike other typologically close scripts of the world, do not have a uniform ] as do, for example, the ] runiform scripts, noted for their exceptional uniformity of language and paleography.<ref>Vasiliev D.D. Graphical fund of Turkic runiform writing monuments in Asian areal, М., 1983, p. 44</ref> The Turkic alphabets are divided into four groups, the best known of which is the ] version of the Enisei group. The Orkhon script is the alphabet used by the ]s from the 8th century to record the ]. It was later used by the ]; a ] variant is known from 9th-century ] inscriptions, and it has likely cousins in the ] of ] and the ] of the 10th century. ] is the only known complete manuscript text written in the Old Turkic script.<ref name="tekin-1993-1">{{harvnb|Tekin|1993|p=1}}</ref>


== History == == History ==
{{main|Turkic history}}
It is believed that the Turkic people are natives of Central Asia. Some historians claim that the Turks originated in Western Asia, and migrated in prehistoric times to Central Asia, while others believe that migration to Western Asia and interactions in various parts of the world by Turkic peoples in ancient times (before the advent of the ]) occurred via Central Asia.
{{see also|Timeline of the Turkic peoples (500–1300)|l1=Timeline|Turkic migration|l2=Turkic expansion|Turkic tribal confederations|l3=Confederations|Nomadic empire|l4=Nomadic empire|Genetic history of East Asians|l5=Genetic history|16=Liao civilization}}
{{History of the Turks pre-14th century}}

=== Origins ===
The origins of the Turkic peoples has been a topic of much discussion.{{sfn|Yunusbayev et al.|2015|pp=1–2}}<ref name="ReferenceA">{{Cite journal |last1=Yunusbayev |first1=Bayazit |last2=Metspalu |first2=Mait |last3=Metspalu |first3=Ene |last4=Valeev |first4=Albert |last5=Litvinov |first5=Sergei |last6=Valiev |first6=Ruslan |last7=Akhmetova |first7=Vita |last8=Balanovska |first8=Elena |last9=Balanovsky |first9=Oleg |last10=Turdikulova |first10=Shahlo |last11=Dalimova |first11=Dilbar |last12=Nymadawa |first12=Pagbajabyn |last13=Bahmanimehr |first13=Ardeshir |last14=Sahakyan |first14=Hovhannes |last15=Tambets |first15=Kristiina |date=21 April 2015 |title=The Genetic Legacy of the Expansion of Turkic-Speaking Nomads across Eurasia |journal=PLOS Genetics |language=en |volume=11 |issue=4 |pages=e1005068 |doi=10.1371/journal.pgen.1005068 |issn=1553-7404 |pmc=4405460 |pmid=25898006 |doi-access=free }}</ref> ] proposes two locations for the Proto-Turkic Urheimat: the southern ] region,{{sfn|Golden|2011|pp=37–38}} and in Southern ], from ] to eastern ].<ref>{{Citation |last=Golden |first=Peter B. |title=Studying the Near and Middle East at the Institute for Advanced Study, Princeton, 1935–2018 |editor-first1=Sabine |editor-last1=Schmidtke |chapter=THE CONSTRUCTION OF ETHNICITY IN MEDIEVAL TURKIC EURASIA |date=27 April 2018 |chapter-url=https://www.degruyter.com/document/doi/10.31826/9781463240035-054/html |pages=420–428 |access-date=28 September 2023 |publisher=Gorgias Press |language=en |doi=10.31826/9781463240035-054 |isbn=978-1-4632-4003-5|s2cid=198684158 }}{{Blockquote|text=The ancient Turkic Urheimat appears to have been located in Southern Siberia from the Lake Baikal region to Eastern Mongolia. The "Proto-Turks" in their Southern Siberian-Mongolian "homeland" were in contact with speakers of Eastern Iranian (Scytho-Sakas, who were also in Mongolia), Uralic and Paleo-Siberian languages.}}</ref> Other studies suggested an early presence of Turkic peoples in Mongolia,<ref>{{harvnb|Janhunen|2003|p=203}}: "There is, indeed, reason to assume that Mongolia is primarily the source region of the Turkic language family, while the Mongolic homeland was located further to the east, in western Manchuria."</ref><ref name="Uchiyama 2020"/> or ].<ref name="Lee 2017"/>

A possible genealogical link of the Turkic languages to Mongolic and Tungusic languages, specifically a hypothetical homeland in ], such as proposed in the ], by ], has received support but also criticism, with opponents attributing similarities to long-term contact.<ref>{{Cite journal |last1=Wang |first1=Chuan-Chao |last2=Yeh |first2=Hui-Yuan |last3=Popov |first3=Alexander N. |last4=Zhang |first4=Hu-Qin |last5=Matsumura |first5=Hirofumi |last6=Sirak |first6=Kendra |last7=Cheronet |first7=Olivia |last8=Kovalev |first8=Alexey |last9=Rohland |first9=Nadin |last10=Kim |first10=Alexander M. |last11=Mallick |first11=Swapan |last12=Bernardos |first12=Rebecca |last13=Tumen |first13=Dashtseveg |last14=Zhao |first14=Jing |last15=Liu |first15=Yi-Chang |date=March 2021 |title=Genomic insights into the formation of human populations in East Asia |journal=Nature |language=en |volume=591 |issue=7850 |pages=413–419 |doi=10.1038/s41586-021-03336-2 |issn=1476-4687 |pmc=7993749 |pmid=33618348|bibcode=2021Natur.591..413W }}</ref><ref>{{Cite journal |last=Fuente |first=José Andrés Alonso de la |date=1 January 2016 |title=Diachrony of verb morphology: Japanese and the Transeurasian languages |url=https://www.jbe-platform.com/content/journals/10.1075/dia.33.4.04alo |journal=Diachronica |language=en |volume=33 |issue=4 |pages=530–537 |doi=10.1075/dia.33.4.04alo |issn=0176-4225}}</ref><ref>{{Cite journal |last=Dybo |first=Anna |date=1 January 2017 |title=New trends in European studies on the Altaic problem |journal=Journal of Language Relationship |language=en |volume=14 |issue=1–2 |pages=71–106 |doi=10.31826/jlr-2017-141-208 |s2cid=212688205 |issn=2219-4029|doi-access=free }}</ref> The proto-Turkic-speakers may be linked to ] ] agricultural societies in ], which is to be associated with the ] and the succeeding ], based on varying degrees of specific East Asian genetic substratum among modern Turkic speakers.{{sfn|Nelson et al.|2020}}{{sfn|Li et al.|2020}}{{sfn|Uchiyama|Gillam|Savelyev|Ning|2020}} According to historians, "the Proto-Turkic subsistence strategy included an agricultural component, a tradition that ultimately went back to the origin of millet agriculture in Northeast China".{{sfn|Nelson et al.|2020}}{{sfn|Li et al.|2020}}{{sfn|Uchiyama|Gillam|Savelyev|Ning|2020}} This view is however questioned by other geneticists, who found no evidence for a shared "Neolithic Hongshan ancestry", but in contrary primary ] (ANA) Neolithic ancestry from the ], supporting an origin from Northeast Asia rather than Manchuria.<ref name="He 230–250">{{Cite journal |last1=He |first1=Guang-Lin |last2=Wang |first2=Meng-Ge |last3=Zou |first3=Xing |last4=Yeh |first4=Hui-Yuan |last5=Liu |first5=Chang-Hui |last6=Liu |first6=Chao |last7=Chen |first7=Gang |last8=Wang |first8=Chuan-Chao |date=January 2022 |title=Extensive ethnolinguistic diversity at the crossroads of North China and South Siberia reflects multiple sources of genetic diversity |url=https://onlinelibrary.wiley.com/doi/10.1111/jse.12827 |journal=Journal of Systematics and Evolution |language=en |volume=61 |issue=1 |pages=230–250 |doi=10.1111/jse.12827 |issn=1674-4918 |s2cid=245849003 |quote=All Altaic-speaking populations were a mixture of dominant Siberian Neolithic ancestry and non-negligible YRB ancestry, suggesting that Altaic-people and their language were more likely to originate from the Northeast Asia (mostly likely the ARB and surrounding regions as the primary common ancestry identified here) and further experienced influence from Neolithic YRB farmers. All Altaic people but eastern and southern Mongolic-speaking populations possessed a high proportion of West Eurasian-related ancestry, in accordance with the linguistically documented language borrowing in Turkic language.}}</ref>{{multiple image
| align = right
| direction = vertical
| width = 231
| image1 = Genetic_admixture_of_modern_Turkic-speaking_populations_(with_population_names).png
| caption1 = Ancestral composition of modern-day Turkic-speaking populations, using three components: blue, ] (Northern Mongolia and exemplified by ]); green, West Eurasian‐related ancestry; and yellow, associated with neolithic millet farmers from ] in China.{{sfn|Yang|Meng|Zhang|2023}}
| image2 = Turkic_origin_and_expansion.png
| caption2 = According to Uchiyama et al. 2020 the "ultimate Proto-Turkic homeland may have been located in a more compact area, most likely in Eastern Mongolia, that is, close to the ultimate Proto-Mongolic homeland in Southern Manchuria and the ultimate Proto-Tungusic homeland in the present-day borderlands of China, Russia and North Korea. This hypothesis would explain the tight connections of Proto-Turkic with Proto-Mongolic and Proto-Tungusic, regardless of whether one interprets the numerous similarities between the three Altaic families as partly inherited or obtained owing to long-lasting contact."{{sfn|Uchiyama|Gillam|Savelyev|Ning|2020}}}}

Around 2,200 BC, the (agricultural) ancestors of the Turkic peoples probably migrated westwards into ], where they adopted a pastoral lifestyle, in part borrowed from ]. Given nomadic peoples such as ], ] and ] share underlying genetic ancestry "that falls into or close to the northeast Asian gene pool", the proto-Turkic language likely originated in northeastern Asia.<ref>{{harvnb|Uchiyama|Gillam|Savelyev|Ning|2020}}: "Although current genetic evidence is not adequate to track the exact time and location for the origin of the proto-Turkic language, it is clear that it probably originated somewhere in northeastern Asia given the fact that the nomadic groups, such as the Rouran, Xiongnu and the Xianbei, all share a substratum genetic ancestry that falls into or close to the northeast Asian gene pool (Ning et al., Reference Ning, Li, Wang, Zhang, Li, Wu and Cuiin press; Li et al., Reference Li, Zhang, Zhao, Chen, Ochir, Sarenbilige and Zhou2018)."</ref>

Genetic data found that almost all modern Turkic peoples retained at least some shared ancestry associated with populations in "South Siberia and Mongolia" (SSM), supporting this region as the "Inner Asian Homeland (IAH) of the pioneer carriers of Turkic languages" which subsequently expanded into Central Asia. The main ] took place during the 5th–16th centuries, partially overlapping with the ] period. Based on single-path IBD tracts, the common Turkic ancestral population lived prior to these migration events, and likely stem from a similar source population as ] further East. Historical data suggests that the Mongol Empire period acted as secondary force of "turkification", as the Mongol conquest "did not involve massive re-settlements of Mongols over the conquered territories. Instead, the Mongol war machine was progressively augmented by various Turkic tribes as they expanded, and in this way Turkic peoples eventually reinforced their expansion over the Eurasian steppe and beyond."<ref name="ReferenceA"/>]

A 2018 ] ] study suggested that the ] slowly transitioned from ] and ]-speaking groups with largely western Eurasian ancestry to increasing East Asian ancestry with Turkic and Mongolian groups in the past 4000 years, including extensive Turkic migrations out of Mongolia and slow assimilation of local populations.<ref>{{Cite journal |last1=Damgaard |first1=Peter de Barros |last2=Marchi |first2=Nina |last3=Rasmussen |first3=Simon |last4=Peyrot |first4=Michaël |last5=Renaud |first5=Gabriel |last6=Korneliussen |first6=Thorfinn |last7=Moreno-Mayar |first7=J. Víctor |last8=Pedersen |first8=Mikkel Winther |last9=Goldberg |first9=Amy |last10=Usmanova |first10=Emma |last11=Baimukhanov |first11=Nurbol |last12=Loman |first12=Valeriy |last13=Hedeager |first13=Lotte |last14=Pedersen |first14=Anders Gorm |last15=Nielsen |first15=Kasper |date=May 2018 |title=137 ancient human genomes from across the Eurasian steppes |url=https://www.nature.com/articles/s41586-018-0094-2 |journal=Nature |language=en |volume=557 |issue=7705 |pages=369–374 |doi=10.1038/s41586-018-0094-2 |pmid=29743675 |bibcode=2018Natur.557..369D |issn=1476-4687 |hdl=1887/3202709 |s2cid=13670282 |quote= The diversification within the Turkic languages suggests that several waves of migrations occurred35, and on the basis of the impact of local languages gradual assimilation to local populations were already assumed36. The East Asian migration starting with the Xiongnu complies well with the hypothesis that early Turkic was their major language37. Further migrations of East Asians westwards find a good linguistic correlate in the influence of Mongolian on Turkic and Iranian in the last millennium38. As such, the genomic history of the Eurasian steppe is the story of a gradual transition from Bronze Age pastoralists of western Eurasian ancestry, towards mounted warriors of increased East Asian ancestry – a process that continued well into historical times.|hdl-access=free }}</ref>{{sfn|Uchiyama|Gillam|Savelyev|Ning|2020}} A 2022 report suggested that Turkic and Mongolic populations in Central Asia formed via admixture events during the Iron Age between "local ] and a South-Siberian or Mongolian group with a high East-Asian ancestry (around 60%)". Modern day ] form an outlier among Central Asian Turkic-speakers with a lower frequency of the Baikal component (c. 22%) and a lack of the Han-like component, being closer to other Indo-Iranian groups.<ref>{{Cite journal |last1=Guarino-Vignon |first1=Perle |last2=Marchi |first2=Nina |last3=Bendezu-Sarmiento |first3=Julio |last4=Heyer |first4=Evelyne |last5=Bon |first5=Céline |date=14 January 2022 |title=Genetic continuity of Indo-Iranian speakers since the Iron Age in southern Central Asia |journal=Scientific Reports |volume=12 |issue=1 |page=733 |doi=10.1038/s41598-021-04144-4 |issn=2045-2322 |pmc=8760286 |pmid=35031610 |bibcode=2022NatSR..12..733G |quote=Modern DNA studies suggested that the Indo-Iranian group was present in Central Asia before the Turko-Mongol group11, maybe as early as Neolithic times; the Turko-Mongol group emerged later from the admixture between a group related to local Indo-Iranian and a South-Siberian or Mongolian group11,13,14 with a high East-Asian ancestry (around 60%).}}</ref> A subsequent study in 2022 also found that the spread of Turkic-speaking populations into Central Asia happened after the spread of Indo-European speakers into the area.<ref>{{Cite journal |last1=Dai |first1=Shan-Shan |last2=Sulaiman |first2=Xierzhatijiang |last3=Isakova |first3=Jainagul |last4=Xu |first4=Wei-Fang |last5=Abdulloevich |first5=Najmudinov Tojiddin |last6=Afanasevna |first6=Manilova Elena |last7=Ibrohimovich |first7=Khudoidodov Behruz |last8=Chen |first8=Xi |last9=Yang |first9=Wei-Kang |last10=Wang |first10=Ming-Shan |last11=Shen |first11=Quan-Kuan |last12=Yang |first12=Xing-Yan |last13=Yao |first13=Yong-Gang |last14=Aldashev |first14=Almaz A |last15=Saidov |first15=Abdusattor |date=25 August 2022 |title=The Genetic Echo of the Tarim Mummies in Modern Central Asians |journal=Molecular Biology and Evolution |volume=39 |issue=9 |doi=10.1093/molbev/msac179 |issn=0737-4038 |pmc=9469894 |pmid=36006373 |quote=By contrast, the Kyrgyz, together with other Turkic-speaking populations, originated from the admixture since the Iron Age. The Historical Era gene flow derived from the Eastern Steppe with the representative of Mongolia_Xiongnu_o1 made a more substantial contribution to Kyrgyz and other Turkic-speaking populations (i.e., Kazakh, Uyghur, Turkmen, and Uzbek; 34.9–55.2%) higher than that to the Tajik populations (11.6–18.6%; fig. 4A), suggesting Tajiks suffer fewer impacts of the recent admixtures (Martínez-Cruz et al. 2011). Consequently, the Tajik populations generally present patterns of genetic continuity of Central Asians since the Bronze Age. Our results are consistent with linguistic and genetic evidence that the spreading of Indo-European speakers into Central Asia was earlier than the expansion of Turkic speakers (Kuz′mina and Mallory 2007; Yunusbayev et al. 2015).}}</ref> Another 2022 study found that all Altaic‐speaking (Turkic, Tungusic, and Mongolic) populations "were a mixture of dominant Siberian Neolithic ancestry and non-negligible YRB ancestry", suggesting their origins were somewhere in Northeast Asia, most likely the ]. Except Eastern and Southern Mongolic-speakers, all "possessed a high proportion of West Eurasian-related ancestry, in accordance with the linguistically documented language borrowing in Turkic languages".<ref name="He 230–250"/>

A 2023 study analyzed the DNA of ] (568–578 AD), a Royal Göktürk, whose remains were recovered from a mausoleum in ], ].<ref name="Yang 2023">{{harvnb|Yang|Meng|Zhang|2023}}</ref> The authors determined that Empress Ashina belonged to the North-East Asian ] haplogroup ], and that approximately 96-98% of her autosomal ancestry was of ] origin, while roughly 2-4% was of West Eurasian origin, indicating ancient admixture.<ref name="Yang 2023"/> This study weakened the "western Eurasian origin and multiple origin hypotheses".<ref name="Yang 2023"/> However, they also noted that "Central Steppe and early Medieval Türk exhibited a high but variable degree of West Eurasian ancestry, indicating there was a genetic substructure of the Türkic empire."<ref name="Yang 2023"/> The early medieval Türk samples were modelled as having 37.8% West Eurasian ancestry and 62.2% Ancient Northeast Asian ancestry<ref>{{harvnb|Yang|Meng|Zhang|2023}}: "The early Medieval Türk (earlyMed_Turk) derived the major ancestry from ANA at a proportion of 62.2%, the remainder from BMAC (10.7%) and Western Steppe Afanasievo nomad (27.1%) (Figs. 1C, 1D; Table S2E)."</ref> and historic Central Steppe Türk samples were also an admixture of West Eurasian and Ancient Northeast Asian ancestry,<ref>{{harvnb|Yang|Meng|Zhang|2023}}: "Central Steppe Türk (Kyrgyzstan_Turk and Kazakhstan_Turk) could be modeled as an admixture of ANA (Mongolia_N_North), BMAC, and West Steppe pastoralists (Afanasievo) (P = 0.0196)"</ref> while historic Karakhanid, Kipchak and the Turkic Karluk samples had 50.6%-61.1% West Eurasian ancestry and 38.9%–49.4% Iron Age ] farmer ancestry.<ref>{{harvnb|Yang|Meng|Zhang|2023}}: "In contrast, the early West Xiongnu (earlyXiongnu_west) and late Sarmatian Xiongnu (lateXiongnu_Sarmatian) derived ancestry mainly from West Eurasian; for example, early West Xiongnu exhibited 68.4% Afanasievo‐related ancestry. Among the Central Steppe pastoralists, Wusun, Kangju, and Tianshan Hun derived a majority of their ancestry (62.4%–73%) from Western Steppe nomadic Afanasievo groups with the remainder (37.6%–27%) characterized as BMAC (the Bactria‐Margiana Archaeological Complex) and East Eurasian. The Turkic Karluk, Kipchak, and Karakhanid could be modeled derived 35%–50.6% of ancestry from Afanasievo, 10.5%–21.7% from BMAC, and 38.9%–49.4% from YR_IA."</ref> A 2020 study also found "high genetic heterogeneity and diversity during the Türkic and Uyghur periods" in the early medieval period in ].<ref name=Jeong_et_al_2020>{{cite journal|vauthors=Jeong C, Wang K, Wilkin S, Taylor WT, Miller BK, Bemmann JH | display-authors=etal| title=A Dynamic 6,000-Year Genetic History of Eurasia's Eastern Steppe. | journal=Cell | year= 2020 | volume= 183 | issue= 4 | pages= 890–904.e29 | pmid=33157037 | doi=10.1016/j.cell.2020.10.015 | pmc=7664836 |quote=From the late first millennium BCE onward, a series of hierarchical and centrally organized empires arose on the Eastern Steppe, notably the Xiongnu (209 BCE–98 CE), Türkic (552–742 CE), Uyghur (744–840 CE), and Khitan (916–1125 CE) empires...Genetic data for the subsequent Early Medieval period are relatively sparse and uneven, and few Xianbei or Rouran sites have yet been identified during the 400-year gap between the Xiongnu and Türkic periods. We observed high genetic heterogeneity and diversity during the Türkic and Uyghur periods...}}</ref>

=== Early historical attestation ===
The earliest separate Turkic peoples, such as the ''Gekun'' (鬲昆) and ''Xinli'' (薪犁), appeared on the peripheries of the late ] confederation about 200 BCE<ref name="Sima Qian 110">] '']'' "後北服渾庾、屈射、丁零、鬲昆、薪犁之國。於是匈奴貴人大臣皆服,以冒頓單于爲賢。" tr. "Later north subjugated the nations of Hunyu, Qushe, Dingling, Gekun, and Xinli. Therefore, the Xiongnu nobles and dignitaries all admired regarded ] as capable"</ref><ref name="Peter Zieme 2006, p. 64" /> (contemporaneous with the Chinese ])<ref name="Findley 2005, p. 29">Findley (2005), p. 29.</ref> and later among the Turkic-speaking ]<ref>], vol. 84</ref> as '']'' (紇骨)<ref name="Pulleyblank 1990">Pulleyblank, E. G. "The Name of the Kirghiz." Central Asiatic Journal 34, no. 1/2 (1990). p. 99</ref> and '']'' (薛).<ref name="Pulleyblank p. VII"/><ref name="Duan p. 370"/>

The ] (also known as Gaoche 高車, lit. "High Carts"),<ref>{{cite journal|last=Pulleyblank|first= Edwin G.|title=The 'High Carts': A Turkish-Speaking People before the Türks|journal= Asia Major |series=Third series |volume=3 |issue=1|year= 1991|pages= 21–22|publisher= Academia Sinica}}</ref> may be related to the ] and the ].<ref>Weishu, "高車,蓋古赤狄之餘種也,初號為狄歷,北方以為勑勒,諸夏以為高車、丁零。其語略與匈奴同而時有小異,或云其先匈奴之甥也" tr.</ref> According to the '']'', the Tiele people were the remnants of the Chidi (赤狄), the red ] people competing with the ] in the ].<ref>{{cite web|url= http://www.xjass.com/ls/content/2010-06/11/content_150662.htm|title= 丁零—铁勒的西迁及其所建西域政权|access-date= 18 March 2015|archive-url= https://web.archive.org/web/20150715184347/http://www.xjass.com/ls/content/2010-06/11/content_150662.htm|archive-date= 15 July 2015}}</ref> Historically they were established after the 6th century BCE.<ref name="Peter Zieme 2006, p. 64">Peter Zieme: The Old Turkish Empires in Mongolia. In: Genghis Khan and his heirs. The Empire of the Mongols. Special tape for Exhibition 2005/2006, p. 64</ref>

The Tiele were first mentioned in Chinese literature from the 6th to 8th centuries.<ref name="Cheng2012">{{cite journal|author=Cheng Fangyi|title=The Research on the Identification Between Tiele (鐵勒) and the Oghuric Tribes|url=https://www.academia.edu/4314856|journal=Archivum Eurasiae Medii Aevi|pages=81–114}}</ref> Some scholars (Haneda, Onogawa, Geng, etc.) proposed that ''Tiele'', ''Dili'', ''Dingling'', ''Chile'', ''Tele'', & ''Tujue'' all transliterated underlying ''Türk''; however, ] proposed that ''Dili'', ''Dingling'', ''Chile'', ''Tele'', and ''Tiele'' transliterated ''Tegrek'' while Tujue transliterated ''Türküt'', plural of ''Türk''.<ref>Cheng (2012), p. 84-87</ref> The appellation ''Türük'' (]: 𐱅𐰇𐰼𐰰) ~ ''Türk'' (OT: 𐱅𐰇𐰼𐰚) (whence ] 突厥 *''dwət-kuɑt'' > *''tɦut-kyat'' > ]: ''Tūjué'') was initially reserved exclusively for the ] by Chinese, Tibetans, and even the Turkic-speaking ]. In contrast, medieval Muslim writers, including Turkic speakers like Ottoman historian ] and explorer ] as well as ] scientist ], often viewed Inner Asian tribes, "as forming a single entity regardless of their linguistic affiliation" commonly used Turk as a generic name for Inner Asians (whether Turkic- or Mongolic-speaking). Only in modern era do modern historians use Turks to refer to all peoples speaking ], differentiated from non-Turkic speakers.<ref>{{cite journal|last=Lee|first=Joo-Yup|year=2016|title=The Historical Meaning of the Term Turk and the Nature of the Turkic Identity of the Chinggisid and Timurid Elites in Post-Mongol Central Asia|journal=Central Asiatic Journal|volume=59|issue=1–2|pages=101–32|doi=10.13173/centasiaj.59.1-2.0101}}</ref>

According to some researchers (Duan, Xue, Tang, Lung, Onogawa, etc.) the later ] descended from the ].<ref name="LT">{{cite book|last1=Tang|first1=Li |url=https://www.academia.edu/7158958|title="A Brief Description of the Early and Medieval Türks" in Turkic Christians in Central Asia and China (5th – 14th Centuries), Studies in Turkic philology|publisher=Minzu University Press|page=VII|language=en}}</ref><ref>Duan: Dingling, Gaoju and Tiele. 1988, pp. 39–41</ref><ref>Xue, Zongzheng ''History of Turks'' (1992). 39–85</ref><ref>Rachel Lung, Interpreters in Early Imperial China, John Benjamins Publishing Company, 2011, "Türk, or Türküt, refers to a state of Ašina clan (of Tiele tribe by ancestral lineage)"</ref><ref>Duan: ''Dingling, Gaoju and Tiele''. 1988, pp. 39–41</ref> The Tiele however were probably one of many early Turkic groups, ancestral to later Turkic populations.<ref>Suribadalaha, "New Studies of the Origins of the Mongols", p. 46–47</ref><ref>Cheng, Fangyi. "The Research on the Identification Between Tiele and the Oghuric Tribes".</ref> However, according to Lee & Kuang (2017), Chinese histories do not describe the Ashina and the Göktürks as descending from the Dingling or the Tiele confederation.{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=201-202}}

==== Xiongnu (3rd c. BCE – 1st c. CE) ====
{{Main|Xiongnu}}
], Western ], ], East ], East ], ], and ].]]

It has even been suggested that the Xiongnu themselves, who were mentioned in Han dynasty records, were ] speakers.<ref>{{cite book |last=Hucker |first=Charles O. |year=1975 |title=China's Imperial Past: An Introduction to Chinese History and Culture |publisher=Stanford University Press |isbn=0-8047-2353-2}}</ref><ref>{{cite journal |title=Early nomads of the Eastern Steppe and their tentative connections in the West|last1=Savelyev |first1=Alexander |last2=Jeong |first2=Choongwon|date=10 May 2020 |journal=Evolutionary Human Sciences|volume=2 |doi=10.1017/ehs.2020.18 |pmid=35663512 |pmc=7612788 |hdl=21.11116/0000-0007-772B-4 |s2cid=218935871 }}</ref><ref>Silk-Road:</ref><ref>{{cite web|url= http://www.historyfiles.co.uk/FeaturesFarEast/TurkicIntro.htm|title= An Introduction to the Turkic Tribes|access-date=18 March 2015}}</ref> The Turks may ultimately have been of Xiongnu descent.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Haug |first1=Robert |title=The Eastern Frontier: Limits of Empire in Late Antique and Early Medieval Central Asia |date=27 June 2019 |publisher=Bloomsbury Publishing |isbn=978-1-78831-722-1|page=64 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=K_2ZDwAAQBAJ&pg=PT98 |language=en|quote="The Türks emerged from the Āshĭnà clan, of probable ] descent, part of the military nobility of the Róurán."}}</ref> Although little is known for certain about the Xiongnu language(s), it seems likely that at least a considerable part of Xiongnu tribes spoke a Turkic language.<ref>Lebedynsky (2006), p. 59.</ref> Some scholars believe they were probably a confederation of various ethnic and linguistic groups.<ref>Nicola di Cosmo, Ancient China and its Enemies, S. 163ff.</ref><ref>{{cite book|last= Ebrey|first= Patricia Buckley|title= The Cambridge Illustrated History of China|year= 2010|edition= 2nd|publisher= Cambridge University Press|isbn=978-0-521-12433-1|url= https://books.google.com/books?id=vr81YoYK0c4C&q=%22Xiongnu+Confederation%22&pg=PA69|page= 69}}</ref> According to a study by Alexander Savelyev and Choongwon Jeong, published in 2020 in the journal ''Evolutionary Human Sciences'' by Cambridge University Press, "the predominant part of the Xiongnu population is likely to have spoken Turkic". However, genetic studies found a mixture of western and eastern Eurasian ancestries, suggesting a large genetic diversity within the Xiongnu. The Turkic-related component may be brought by eastern Eurasian genetic substratum.<ref>{{harvnb|Savelyev|Jeong|2020|ps=:"Specifically, individuals from Iron Age steppe and Xiongnu have an ancestry related to present-day and ancient Iranian/Caucasus/Turan populations in addition to the ancestry components derived from the Late Bronze Age populations. We estimate that they derive between 5 and 25% of their ancestry from this new source, with 18% for Xiongnu (Table 2). We speculate that the introduction of this new western Eurasian ancestry may be linked to the Iranian elements in the Xiongnu linguistic material, while the Turkic-related component may be brought by their eastern Eurasian genetic substratum." Table 2: Sintashta_MLBA, 0.239; Khovsgol LBA, 0.582; Gonur1 BA 0.178}}</ref><!-- Deleted image removed: ]. Created by Yollyk-Tegin Khan in memory of his father and uncle Bagha ]]] -->

Using the only extant possibly Xiongnu writings, the rock art of the ] and ],<ref>MA Li-qing {{Webarchive|url=https://web.archive.org/web/20071019015743/http://wanfangdata.com.cn/qikan/periodical.Articles/kgyww/kgyw2004/0402/040208.htm |date=19 October 2007 }}(Wanfang Data: Digital Periodicals, 2004)</ref> some scholars argue that the older Xiongnu writings are precursors to the earliest known ] alphabet, the ]. Petroglyphs of this region dates from the ] to the 19th century, and consists mainly of engraved signs (petroglyphs) and few painted images.<ref>Paola Demattè (Paper presented at the First International Conference of Eurasian Archaeology, University of Chicago, 3–4 May 2002.)</ref> Excavations done during 1924–1925 in ] kurgans located in the ] River in the northern ]n hills north of ] produced objects with over 20 carved characters, which were either identical or very similar to the ] letters of the Turkic Orkhon script discovered in the ].<ref>N. Ishjatms, "Nomads In Eastern Central Asia", in the ''History of civilizations of Central Asia'', Volume 2, Fig 6, p. 166, UNESCO Publishing, 1996, {{ISBN|92-3-102846-4}}</ref>

=== Steppe expansions ===
==== Göktürks – Turkic Khaganate (5th–8th c.) ====
{{Asia 576 CE|right|The First Turkic Khaganate at its greatest extent, in 576, with neighbouring contemporary polities.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Haug |first1=Robert |title=The Eastern Frontier: Limits of Empire in Late Antique and Early Medieval Central Asia |date=27 June 2019 |publisher=Bloomsbury Publishing |isbn=978-1-78831-722-1|page=65 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=K_2ZDwAAQBAJ&pg=PT99 |language=en|quote="The collapse of the Hephthalite domains made neighbours of the Türk Khāqānate and the Sasanian Empire, both sharing a border that ran the length of the River Oxus. Further Turkish expansion to the west and around the Caspian Sea saw them dominate the western steppes and its people and extend this frontier down to the Caucasus where they also shared a border with the Sasanians. Khusrow is noted at the time for improving the fortifications on either side of the Caspian, Bāb al-Abwāb at Derbent and the Great Wall of Gorgān."}}</ref>||Map of the First Turkic Khaganate.png}}
{{Main|Göktürks|First Turkic Khaganate}}

The earliest certain mentioning of the politonym "Turk" was in the Chinese ]. In the 540s AD, this text mentions that the Turks came to China's border seeking silk goods and a trade relationship. A Sogdian diplomat represented China in a series of embassies between the ] dynasty and the Turks in the years 545 and 546.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Tasar |first1=Eren |last2=Frank |first2=Allen J. |last3=Eden |first3=Jeff |title=From the Khan's Oven: Studies on the History of Central Asian Religions in Honor of Devin DeWeese |date=11 October 2021 |publisher=BRILL |isbn=978-90-04-47117-7 |page=9 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=4stKEAAAQBAJ&pg=PA9 |language=en}} "The Türks, while still vassals of the Rouran, are first mentioned in the Zhoushu (chap. 50) in the early 540s when they came to the border seeking to obtain silk goods and establish a relationship with China. Shortly thereafter a series of embassies in 545 and 546 between the Türks and the Western Wei followed in which a Sogdian, An Nuopantuo (Nakbanda), represented China."</ref>

According to the ''Book of Sui'' and the '']'', they were "mixed barbarians" ({{linktext|雜胡}}; ''záhú'') who migrated from ] (now in modern ], ]) to the ]s seeking inclusion in their confederacy and protection from the prevailing dynasty.<ref name = "Suishu 84 tujue">] et al., ''Suishu'', quote: "突厥之先,平涼雜胡也,姓阿史那氏。後魏太武滅沮渠氏,阿史那以五百家奔茹茹,世居金山,工於鐵作。金山狀如兜鍪,俗呼兜鍪為「突厥」,因以為號。"</ref><ref name="Tong197">], ''Tongdian'' quote: "突厥之先,平涼今平涼郡雜胡也,蓋匈奴之別種,姓阿史那氏。後魏太武滅沮渠氏,沮渠茂虔都姑臧,謂之北涼,為魏所滅。阿史那以五百家奔蠕蠕,代居金山,狀如兜鍪,俗呼兜鍪為「突厥」,因以為號。"</ref> Alternatively, according to the '']'', '']'', and '']'', the Ashina clan was a component of the ] confederation.<ref name="Zhou50">] et al., ''Zhoushu'', quote: "突厥者,蓋匈奴之別種,姓阿史那氏。"</ref><ref>''Beishi'' quote: "突厥者,其先居西海之右,獨為部落,蓋匈奴之別種也。" translation: "The Tujue, their ancestors dwelt on the right bank of the Western Sea; a lone tribe, probably a separate branch of the Xiongnu"</ref><ref>Golden, Peter B. (August 2018). . ''The Medieval History Journal'', 21 (2): p. 298 of 291–327, fn. 36.</ref><ref>''Xin Tangshu'', . "突厥阿史那氏, 蓋古匈奴北部也." "The Ashina family of the Turk probably were the northern tribes of the ancient Xiongnu." quoted and translated in Xu (2005), , University of Helsinki, 2005</ref> Göktürks were also posited as having originated from an obscure Suo state (索國), north of the Xiongnu.<ref>''Zhoushu'', "vol. 50" "或云突厥之先出於索國,在匈奴之北。"</ref><ref>''Beishi'' "vol. 99 – section Tujue" quote: "又曰突厥之先,出於索國,在匈奴之北。"</ref> The Ashina tribe were famed ]s and were granted land south of the ] (金山 ''Jinshan''), which looked like a ], from which they were said to have gotten their name 突厥 (''Tūjué''),<ref>''Zhoushu'', "vol. 50" quote: "居金山之陽,為茹茹鐵工。金山形似兜鍪,其俗謂兜鍪為「突厥」,遂因以為號焉。"</ref><ref name = "Suishu 84 tujue"/> the first recorded use of "Turk" as a political name. In the 6th-century, Ashina's power had increased such that they conquered the Tiele on their Rouran overlords' behalf and even overthrew Rourans and established the First Turkic Khaganate.<ref name="Carter V. Findley" />
] warrior from the Göktürk period. The horse's tail is knotted in Turkic style. His hair is long, braided and his big-collared caftan and boots are Turkic clothing features.]]

The original ] name ''Kök Türk'' derives from ''kök'' ~ ''kö:k'', "sky, sky-coloured, blue, blue-grey".<ref>Golden, P.B. (1992) ''An Introduction to the History of the Turkic Peoples''. Series Turcologica, Band IX. Otto-Harrassowitz. p. 117</ref> Unlike its Xiongnu predecessor, the Göktürk Khaganate had its temporary ]s from the ] clan, who were ''subordinate'' to a ] authority controlled by a council of tribal chiefs. The ] retained elements of its original ] ] religion, that later evolved into ], although it received missionaries of ] monks and practiced a syncretic religion. The Göktürks were the first Turkic people to write ] in a runic script, the ]. The Khaganate was also the first state known as "Turk". It eventually collapsed due to a series of dynastic conflicts, but many states and peoples later used the name "Turk".<ref>{{Cite book|url=https://books.google.com/books?id=1dRpAAAAMAAJ&q=slave++Rouran|title=Türk Tarih Kongresi|date=1999|publisher=Türk Tarih Kurumu|isbn=978-975-16-0260-2|language=tr}}</ref><ref>West, Barbara A. (19 May 2010). ''Encyclopedia of the Peoples of Asia and Oceania''. Infobase Publishing. p. 829. {{ISBN|978-1-4381-1913-7}}.</ref>

The Göktürks (]) quickly spread west to the Caspian Sea. Between 581 and 603 the ] in Kazakhstan separated from the ] in Mongolia and ] during a civil war. The Han-Chinese successfully overthrew the Eastern Turks in 630 and created a military Protectorate until 682. After that time the ] ruled large parts of the former Göktürk area. After several wars between Turks, Chinese and Tibetans, the weakened Second Turkic Khaganate was replaced by the ] in the year 744.<ref name="Haywood, John 1998">Haywood, John (1998), ''Historical Atlas of the Medieval World, AD 600–1492'', Barnes & Noble</ref>

==== Bulgars, Golden Horde and the Siberian Khanate ====
] in the 7th century]]
The ] established themselves in between the Caspian and Black Seas in the 5th and 6th centuries, followed by their conquerors, the ] who converted to Judaism in the 8th or 9th century. After them came the ] who created a large confederacy, which was subsequently taken over by the ] and the ]. One group of Bulgars settled in the Volga region and mixed with local ] to become the ] in what is today ]. These Bulgars were conquered by the Mongols following their westward sweep under ] in the 13th century.<ref>{{cite book |last1=McLynn |first1=Frank |title=Genghis Khan: His Conquests, His Empire, His Legacy |date=14 July 2015 |publisher=Hachette Books |isbn=978-0-306-82395-4 |page=436 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=jcQzCgAAQBAJ&pg=PA436 |language=en}}</ref> Other Bulgars settled in Southeastern Europe in the 7th and 8th centuries, and mixed with the ] population, adopting what eventually became the Slavic ]. Everywhere, Turkic groups mixed with the local populations to varying degrees.<ref name="Carter V. Findley" />

]]]
The Volga Bulgaria became an Islamic state in 922 and influenced the region as it controlled many trade routes. In the 13th century, Mongols invaded Europe and established the ] in Eastern Europe, western and northern Central Asia, and even western Siberia. The ] and Islamic ] were absorbed by the Golden Horde in the 13th century; in the 14th century, Islam became the official religion under ] where the general population (Turks) as well as the aristocracy (Mongols) came to speak the ] and were collectively known as "]" by Russians and Westerners. This country was also known as the ] and covered most of what is today ], as well as the entirety of modern-day southern and eastern ] (the European section). The Golden Horde disintegrated into several khanates and hordes in the 15th and 16th century including the ], ], and ] (among others), which were one by one conquered and annexed by the Russian Empire in the 16th through 19th centuries.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Figes |first1=Orlando |title=The Story of Russia |date=20 September 2022 |publisher=Metropolitan Books |isbn=978-1-250-79690-5 |pages=45–46 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=ZXtUEAAAQBAJ&pg=PT45 |language=en}}</ref>

In Siberia, the ] was established in the 1490s by fleeing Tatar aristocrats of the disintegrating ] who established Islam as the official religion in western Siberia over the partly Islamized native ] and indigenous Uralic peoples. It was the northernmost Islamic state in recorded history and it survived up until 1598 when it was conquered by Russia.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Soucek |first1=Branko |last2=Soucek |first2=Svat |title=A History of Inner Asia |date=17 February 2000 |publisher=Cambridge University Press |isbn=978-0-521-65704-4 |page=29 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=7E8gYYcHuk8C&pg=PA29 |language=en}}"The Kipchak Turkic - speaking khans of Sibir had ruled there from the thirteenth century to the sixteenth , and their realm represented the northernmost position ever occupied by an Islamic state."</ref>

==== Uyghur Khaganate (8th–9th c.) ====
]
]

{{Main|Uyghur Khaganate}}
]
The ] had established itself by the year 744 AD.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Benson |first1=Linda |last2=Svanberg |first2=Ingvar |title=China's Last Nomads: History and Culture of China's Kazaks |date=2016 |publisher=Routledge |isbn=978-1-315-28519-1 |page=35 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=ooQYDQAAQBAJ&pg=PT35}}</ref> Through trade relations established with China, its capital city of ] in central Mongolia's ] became a wealthy center of commerce,<ref>{{harvnb|Benson|Svanberg|2016|p=65}}</ref> and a significant portion of the Uyghur population abandoned their nomadic lifestyle for a ] one. The Uyghur Khaganate produced extensive literature, and a relatively high number of its inhabitants were literate.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Szostak |first1=Rick |title=Making Sense of World History |date=22 October 2020 |publisher=Routledge |isbn=978-1-000-20167-3 |page=672 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=tDv_DwAAQBAJ&pg=PT672 |language=en}}</ref>

The official state religion of the early Uyghur Khaganate was ], which was introduced through the conversion of ] by the ] after the ].<ref>{{cite book |last1=Foltz |first1=Richard |title=Religions of Iran: From Prehistory to the Present |date=1 November 2013 |publisher=Simon and Schuster |isbn=978-1-78074-309-7 |page=256 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=sBu9DwAAQBAJ&pg=PT256}}</ref> The Uyghur Khaganate was tolerant of religious diversity and practiced variety of religions including Buddhism, Christianity, shamanism and Manichaeism.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Golden |first1=Peter B. |title=Central Asia in World History |date=14 January 2011 |publisher=Oxford University Press |isbn=978-0-19-972203-7 |page=47 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=lRZwAgAAQBAJ&pg=PA47 |language=en |ref=none}}</ref>

During the same time period, the ] Turks emerged as power factor in Northern and Central China and were recognized by the Tang Empire as allied power.

In 808, 30,000 Shatuo under Zhuye Jinzhong defected from the Tibetans to Tang China and the Tibetans punished them by killing Zhuye Jinzhong as they were chasing them.<ref>{{cite book | url=https://books.google.com/books?id=Mm-cEAAAQBAJ&dq=843+shatuo&pg=PT248 | title=From the Khitans to the Jurchens & Mongols: A History of Barbarians in Triangle Wars & Quartet Conflicts | isbn=978-1-6632-4258-7 | last1=Yuan | first1=Hong | date=14 November 2022 }}</ref> The Uyghurs also fought against an alliance of Shatuo and Tibetans at Beshbalik.<ref>{{cite book | url=https://books.google.com/books?id=DhiWDwAAQBAJ&dq=843+shatuo&pg=RA1-PA310 | title=History of Central Asia, the: 4-volume set | isbn=978-1-83860-868-2 | last1=Baumer | first1=Christoph | date=18 April 2018 }}</ref>

The Shatuo Turks under Zhuye Chixin (]) served the Tang dynasty in fighting against their fellow Turkic people in the ]. In 839, when the Uyghur khaganate (Huigu) general Jueluowu (掘羅勿) rose against the rule of then-reigning ], he elicited the help from Zhuye Chixin by giving Zhuye 300 horses, and together, they defeated Zhangxin Khan, who then committed suicide, precipitating the subsequent collapse of the Uyghur Khaganate. In the next few years, when Uyghur Khaganate remnants tried to raid Tang borders, the Shatuo participated extensively in counterattacking the Uyghur Khaganate with other tribes loyal to Tang.<ref>''Zizhi Tongjian'', ].</ref> In 843, Zhuye Chixin, under the command of the Han Chinese officer ] with Tuyuhun, Tangut and Han Chinese troops, participated in a raid against the Uyghur khaganate that led to the slaughter of Uyghur forces at Shahu mountain.<ref>''Zizhi Tongjian'', ].</ref><ref>{{cite book | url=https://books.google.com/books?id=zzEUAgAAQBAJ&dq=843+shatuo&pg=PA32 | title=Governing China: 150-1850 | isbn=978-1-60384-447-5 | last1=Dardess | first1=John W. | date=10 September 2010 }}</ref><ref>{{cite book | url=https://books.google.com/books?id=nSk7EAAAQBAJ&dq=843+shatuo&pg=PA173 | title=Warfare in Chinese History | isbn=978-90-04-48294-4 | last1=Ven | first1=Hans van de | date=26 July 2021 }}</ref>

]

The ] Turks had founded several short-lived ] dynasties in northern China during the ] starting with Later Tang. The Shatuo chief Zhuye Chixin's family was adopted by the Tang dynasty and given the title prince of Jin and the Tang dynasty imperial surname of Li, which is why the Shatuo of Later Tang claimed to be restoring the Tang dynasty and not founding a new one. The official language of these dynasties was Chinese and they used Chinese titles and names. Some Shaotuo Turk emperors (of the Later Jin, Later Han and Northern Han) also claimed patrilineal Han Chinese ancestry.<ref>''Wudai Shi'', Considering the father was originally called Nieliji without a surname, the fact that his ] ancestors all had Chinese names here indicates that these names were probably all created posthumously after Shi Jingtang became a "Chinese" emperor. Shi Jingtang actually claimed to be a descendant of Chinese historical figures ] and ], and insisted that his ancestors went westwards towards non-] area during the political chaos at the end of the ] in the early 3rd century.</ref><ref name="vol. 1">According to '']'', ], and '']'', ]. ] was of Shatuo origin. According to '']'', Liu Zhiyuan's great-great-grandfather Liu Tuan (劉湍) (titled as Emperor Mingyuan posthumously, granted the temple name of Wenzu) descended from Liu Bing (劉昞), Prince of ], a son of ]</ref><ref name=ancestry>According to '']'', ], and '']'', ]. ] was of Shatuo origin. According to '']'', Liu Zhiyuan's great-great-grandfather Liu Tuan (劉湍) (titled as Emperor Mingyuan posthumously, granted the temple name of Wenzu) descended from Liu Bing (劉昞), Prince of Huaiyang, a son of ]</ref>

After the fall of the Tang dynasty in 907, the Shatuo Turks replaced them and created the ] dynasty in 923. The Shatuo Turks ruled over a large part of northern China, including ]. They adopted Chinese names and united Turkic and Chinese traditions. Later Tang fell in 937 but the Shatuo rose to become a powerful faction of northern China. They created two other dynasties, including the ] and ] and ] (Later Han and Northern Han were ruled by the same family, with the latter being a rump state of the former). The Shatuo Liu Zhiyuan was a Buddhist and he worshipped the ] in 945. The Shatuo dynasties were replaced by the Han Chinese ].<ref name="Theobald" /><ref>Mote, F.W.: ''Imperial China: 900–1800'', Harvard University Press, 1999</ref> The Shatuo became the ] Turks living in Inner Mongolia after the Song dynasty conquered the last Shatuo dynasty of Northern Han.<ref>''] et al., ]'', "阿剌兀思剔吉忽里,汪古部人,係出沙陀雁門之後。" Alawusi Tijihuli, a man of the Ongud tribe, descendant(s) of the ]'s Shatuo</ref><ref name="Paulillo, Mauricio 2013 pp. 237-252">Paulillo, Mauricio. "White Tatars: The Problem of the Öngũt conversion to Jingjiao and the Uighur Connection" in ''From the Oxus River to the Chinese Shores: Studies on East Syriac Christianity in China and Central Asia (orientalia - patristica - oecumenica)'' Ed. Tang, Winkler. (2013) pp. 237-252</ref> The Ongud assimilated to the Mongols.<ref name="Aristov">{{cite book| author = Аристов Н. А. | url = https://www.bulgari-istoria-2010.com/booksRu/Aristov-Trudy_po_istorii_i_etnicheskomu_sostavu_tiurkskih_plemen.pdf |archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20170101151925/https://www.bulgari-istoria-2010.com/booksRu/Aristov-Trudy_po_istorii_i_etnicheskomu_sostavu_tiurkskih_plemen.pdf |archive-date=1 January 2017 | title = Труды по истории и этническому составу тюркских племен |location= Бишкек |date = 2003 |publisher= Илим | page = 103| isbn = 5-8355-1297-X}}</ref><ref name="Ochir">{{cite book| author = Очир А. | url = http://kigiran.com/sites/default/files/ochir_mongolskie_etnonimy.pdf |script-title=ru:Монгольские этнонимы: вопросы происхождения и этнического состава монгольских народов |editor=Э. П. Бакаева |editor2=К. В. Орлова |location= Элиста |date = 2016 |publisher= КИГИ РАН | pages = 133–135| isbn = 978-5-903833-93-1}}</ref><ref>Ozkan Izgi, "The ancient cultures of Central Asia and the relations with the Chinese civilization" ''The Turks'', Ankara, 2002, p. 98, {{ISBN|975-6782-56-0}}</ref><ref name="Paulillo, Mauricio 2013 pp. 237-252"/>

The Yenisei Kyrgyz allied with China to destroy the Uyghur Khaganate in the year 840 AD.<ref name="Haywood, John 1998" /><ref name="Theobald">{{cite web|url=http://www.chinaknowledge.de/History/Altera/shatuo.html|title=Shatuo Türks 沙陀突厥 (www.chinaknowledge.de)|last=Theobald|first=Ulrich|website=chinaknowledge.de|language=en|access-date=30 April 2019}}</ref> From the ], the Kyrgyz pushed south and eastward in to Xinjiang and the ] in central Mongolia, leaving much of the Uyghur civilization in ruins.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Mierse |first1=William E. |title=Artifacts from the Ancient Silk Road |date=31 December 2022 |publisher=ABC-CLIO |isbn=978-1-4408-5829-1 |page=xlvii |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=WQuXEAAAQBAJ&pg=PR47 |language=en}}</ref> Much of the Uyghur population relocated to the southwest of Mongolia, establishing the ] in Gansu where their descendants are the modern day ] and ] in Turpan, Xinjiang.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Holdstock |first1=Nick |title=China's Forgotten People: Xinjiang, Terror and the Chinese State |date=13 June 2019 |publisher=Bloomsbury Publishing |isbn=978-1-78831-982-9 |page=17 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=HcicDwAAQBAJ&pg=PA17 |language=en}}</ref>

=== Central Asia ===

==== Kangar union (659–750) ====
]

The Kangar Union (''Qanghar Odaghu'') was a ] state in the former territory of the Western Turkic Khaganate (the entire present-day state of ], without ]). The capital of the Kangar union was located in the Ulytau mountains. Among the Pechenegs, the '''Kangar'''{{NoteTag|For its etymology see ]}} formed the elite of the Pecheneg tribes. After being defeated by the ], ], and the ], they migrated west and defeated ],<ref>{{cite book |last1=Róna-Tas |first1=András |title=Hungarians and Europe in the Early Middle Ages: An Introduction to Early Hungarian History |date=1 March 1999 |publisher=Central European University Press |isbn=978-963-386-572-9 |page=288 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=y4hZEAAAQBAJ&pg=PA288 |language=en}}</ref> and after forming an alliance with the ], they defeated the ] Army.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Chaliand |first1=GŽrard |last2=Wong |first2=R. Bin |title=A Global History of War: From Assyria to the Twenty-First Century |date=17 November 2014 |publisher=Univ of California Press |isbn=978-0-520-28360-2 |page=82 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=w9gkDQAAQBAJ&pg=PA82 |language=en}}</ref> The Pecheneg state was established by the 11th century and at its peak carried a population of over 2.5 million, composed of many different ethnic groups.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Melnyk |first1=Mykola |title=Byzantium and the Pechenegs: The Historiography of the Problem |date=2022 |publisher=BRILL |isbn=978-90-04-50522-3 |page=318 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=FpxjEAAAQBAJ&pg=PA318 |language=en}}</ref>

The elite of the Kangar tribes are believed to have had an ] origin,<ref>{{cite book |last1=Adrianov |first1=Boris V. |last2=Mantellini |first2=Simone |title=Ancient Irrigation Systems of the Aral Sea Area: Ancient Irrigation Systems of the Aral Sea Area |date=31 December 2013 |publisher=Oxbow Books, Limited |isbn=978-1-78297-167-2 |page=238 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=is0nDwAAQBAJ&pg=PA238}} "The sedentary ruling stratum (the Kangar) was of Iranian origin" ... "The ruling elite spoke Iranian, whereas most of the population spoke Turkic with a significant admixture of Hunno-Bulgar elements."</ref> and they likely spoke an Iranian language,<ref>{{harvnb|Melnyk|2022|p=318|ps="According to Pritsak, the Pecheneg ruling elite (i.e the Kangar tribes) were Iranian speakers."}}</ref> while most of the Pecheneg population spoke a Turkic language, with a significant percentage speaking ] dialects.

The Yatuks, a tribe within the Kangar state who could not accompany the Kangars as they migrated West, remained in the old lands, where they are known as the ] people, who are now part of the ], ], and ] tribes.<ref>Tolstoi V.P. ''Origin of the Karakalpak people''//KSIE, Moscow, 1947. p.75</ref>

==== Oghuz Yabgu State (766–1055) ====
]

The Oguz Yabgu State (''Oguz il'', meaning "Oguz Land", "Oguz Country")(750–1055) was a ] state, founded by ] in 766, located geographically in an area between the coasts of the ] and ]s. Oguz tribes occupied a vast territory in ] along the ], ], ], and ] rivers, the Aral Sea area, the ] valley, the foothills of the ] in ], and the ] valley (see map). The Oguz political association developed in the 9th and 10th centuries in the Syr Darya basin.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Tang |first1=Li |last2=Winkler |first2=Dietmar W. |title=Winds of Jingjiao: Studies on Syriac Christianity in China and Central Asia |date=2016 |publisher=LIT Verlag Münster |isbn=978-3-643-90754-7 |page=223 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=oI2CDQAAQBAJ&pg=PA223 |language=en}}</ref>

====Salar Oghuz migration====
The ] are descended from Turkmen who migrated from Central Asia and settled in a Tibetan area of Qinghai under Ming Chinese rule. The Salar ethnicity formed and underwent ethnogenesis from a process of male Turkmen migrants from Central Asia marrying ] ] women during the early Ming dynasty.<ref>{{cite journal|url=https://hal.science/hal-03427697/document |first1=Erika |last1=Sandman|first2= Camille|last2= Simon|title=Tibetan as a "model language" in the Amdo Sprachbund: evidence from Salar and Wutun|journal= Journal of South Asian Languages and Linguistics|date=2016|volume= 3|issue=1|page=88|doi=10.1515/jsall-2016-0003 |s2cid=146919944 |id=hal-03427697}}</ref><ref>{{cite journal | url=https://www.academia.edu/31665301 | title=Tibetan as a "model language" in the Amdo Sprachbund: Evidence from Salar and Wutun | journal=Journal of South Asian Languages and Linguistics | date=23 October 2023 | volume=3 | issue=1 | page=85 | last1=Sandman | first1=Erika | last2=Simon | first2=Camille | doi=10.1515/jsall-2016-0003 | s2cid=146919944 }}</ref><ref>{{cite thesis|url=https://core.ac.uk/download/pdf/78563017.pdf|publisher= University of Helsinki|title= A Grammar of Wutun|degree =PhD Thesis. Department of World Cultures|first =Erika |last=Sandman|page= 15}}</ref><ref>{{cite journal|last=Han|first=Deyan|others=Ma Jianzhong and Kevin Stuart, translators|edition=2|editor1-last=Mostaert |editor1-first=Antoine |journal=Central Asiatic Journal |volume=43–44 |date=1999 |publisher=O. Harrassowitz |page=212 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=8HZxAAAAMAAJ&q=,+with+the+exception+of+Hui+,+there+is+no+case+of+a+Salar%27s+daughter+marrying+a+non+-+Salar+.+On+the+contrary+,+many+non+-+Salar+females+married+into+Salar+households+.+As+folk+acounts+and+historical+records+recount+,+shortly+after+Salar+ancestors+reached+Xunhua+,+they+had+relation-+ships+with+neighbouring+Tibetans+through+marriage+.+Tibetan+women+primarily+married+into+Salar+males+%27+households+and+,+af-+terwards+,+brides+were+expected+to+convert+to |title=The Salar Khazui System}}</ref>

=== {{anchor|Islamic empires}}Iranian, Indian, Arabic, and Anatolian expansion ===
{{Main|Ghaznavids|Seljuk Empire|Delhi Sultanate|Mamluk Sultanate|Timurid Empire|Bahri dynasty|Deccan sultanates|Safavid Iran|Ottoman Empire|Mughal Empire|Afsharid dynasty}}

Turkic peoples and related groups migrated west from present-day ], ], ] and the ]-region towards the ], South Asia, and ] (modern Turkey) in many waves. The date of the initial expansion remains unknown.

==== Persia ====
===== Ghaznavid dynasty (977–1186) =====
]
{{Main|Ghaznavids|Uzbeks}}

The '''Ghaznavid dynasty''' ({{langx|fa|غزنویان}} ''ġaznaviyān'') was a ]<ref>{{cite book|last1=Böwering|first1=Gerhard|last2=Crone|first2=Patricia|last3=Mirza|first3=Mahan|title=The Princeton Encyclopedia of Islamic Political Thought|date=1 January 2012|publisher=Princeton University Press|pages=410–411}}</ref> ] dynasty of Turkic '']'' origin,<ref>''Islamic Central Asia: an anthology of historical sources'', Ed. Scott Cameron Levi and Ron Sela, (Indiana University Press, 2010), 83;''The Ghaznavids were a dynasty of Turkic slave-soldiers...'', ''Encyclopædia Britannica'' Jonathan M. Bloom, Sheila Blair, ''The Grove Encyclopedia of Islamic Art and Architecture'', Oxford University Press, 2009, Vol.2, p.163, , "Turkish dominated mamluk regiments...dynasty of mamluk origin (the GHAZNAVID line) carved out an empire..."</ref> at their greatest extent ruling large parts of ], ], much of ] and the northwest ] (part of ]) from 977 to 1186.<ref name="EIr">C.E. Bosworth: ''The Ghaznavids''. Edinburgh, 1963</ref><ref>], in '']'', Online Edition 2006</ref><ref name="EIslam">], "Ghaznavids", in '']'', Online Edition; Brill, Leiden; 2006/2007</ref> The dynasty was founded by ] upon his succession to rule of the region of ] after the death of his father-in-law, ], who was a breakaway ex-general of the ] from ], north of the ] in ].<ref name="EB">Encyclopædia Britannica, , Online Edition 2007</ref>

Although the dynasty was of ] Turkic origin, it was thoroughly ] in terms of language, culture, literature and habits<ref>David Christian: ''A History of Russia, Central Asia, and Mongolia''; Blackwell Publishing, 1998; pg. 370: "Though Turkic in origin Alp Tegin, Sebuk Tegin, and Mahmud were all thoroughly Persianized".</ref><ref>J. Meri (Hg.), ''Medieval Islamic Civilization: An Encyclopedia'', "Ghaznavids", London u.a. 2006, p. 294.</ref><ref>] and ], ''The Middle East: a history: Volume 1'', (McGraw-Hill, 1997).</ref><ref>Meisami, Julie Scott, ''Persian historiography to the end of the twelfth century'', (Edinburgh University Press, 1999), 143.</ref> and hence is regarded by some as a "Persian dynasty".<ref>B. Spuler, "The Disintegration of the Caliphate in the East", in the ''Cambridge History of Islam'', Vol. IA: ''The Central islamic Lands from Pre-Islamic Times to the First World War'', ed. by P.M. Holt, Ann K.S. Lambton, and Bernard Lewis (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1970). pg 147.</ref>

===== Seljuk Empire (1037–1194) =====
{{Main|Seljuk Empire}}

]

The '''Seljuk Empire''' ({{langx|fa|آل سلجوق|translit=Āl-e Saljuq|lit=House of Saljuq}}) or the '''Great Seljuq Empire'''<ref>* A. C. S. Peacock, ''Great Seljuk Empire'', (Edinburgh University Press, 2015), 1–378.
* Christian Lange; Songül Mecit, eds., ''Seljuqs: Politics, Society and Culture'' (Edinburgh University Press, 2012), 1–328.
* P.M. Holt; Ann K.S. Lambton, Bernard Lewis, ''The Cambridge History of Islam (Volume IA): The Central Islamic Lands from Pre-Islamic Times to the First World War'', (Cambridge University Press, 1977), 151, 231–234.</ref>{{sfn|Mecit|2014|page=128}}{{sfn|Peacock|Yıldız|2013|page=6}} was a ] ]<ref>* "Aḥmad of Niǧde's ''al-Walad al-Shafīq'' and the Seljuk Past", A. C. S. Peacock, ''Anatolian Studies'', Vol. 54, (2004), 97.
* Meisami, Julie Scott, ''Persian Historiography to the End of the Twelfth Century'', (Edinburgh University Press, 1999), 143.
* '']'', "", Online Edition.
* ], ''Medieval Islamic Civilization: An Encyclopedia'', Routledge, 2005, p.&nbsp;399.
* ], ''Central Asia and the World'', ] (May 1994), p.&nbsp;79.
* Jonathan Dewald, ''Europe 1450 to 1789: Encyclopedia of the Early Modern World'', Charles Scribner's Sons, 2004, p. 24.
* ], ''The Empire of the Steppes'', (Rutgers University Press, 1991), 161, 164.
* Wendy M. K. Shaw, ''Possessors and possessed: museums, archaeology, and the visualization of history in the late Ottoman Empire''. University of California Press, 2003, {{ISBN|0-520-23335-2}}, {{ISBN|978-0-520-23335-5}}; p.&nbsp;5.</ref> ] ], originating from the ] branch of ].<ref>* {{cite journal |last=Jackson |first = P. |year=2002 |title = Review: The History of the Seljuq Turkmens: The History of the Seljuq Turkmens |journal=Journal of Islamic Studies |volume=13 |issue=1 |pages=75–76 |doi=10.1093/jis/13.1.75 |publisher=] }}
* Bosworth, C. E. (2001). 0Notes on Some Turkish Names in Abu 'l-Fadl Bayhaqi's Tarikh-i Mas'udi". ''Oriens'', Vol. 36, 2001 (2001), pp. 299–313.
* Dani, A. H., Masson, V. M. (Eds), Asimova, M. S. (Eds), Litvinsky, B. A. (Eds), Boaworth, C. E. (Eds). (1999). ''History of Civilizations of Central Asia''. ] (Pvt. Ltd).
* ] (2006). ''On Romani origins and identity''. The Romani Archives and Documentation Center. ].
* Asimov, M. S., Bosworth, C. E. (eds.). (1998). ''History of Civilizations of Central Asia'', Vol. IV: "The Age of Achievement: AD 750 to the End of the Fifteenth Century", Part One: "The Historical, Social and Economic Setting". Multiple History Series. Paris: UNESCO Publishing.
* Dani, A. H., Masson, V. M. (Eds), Asimova, M. S. (Eds), Litvinsky, B. A. (Eds), Boaworth, C. E. (Eds). (1999). ''History of Civilizations of Central Asia''. Motilal Banarsidass Publishers (Pvt. Ltd).</ref> At its greatest extent, the Seljuk Empire controlled a vast area stretching from western ] and the ] to the ] in the east, and from ] to the ] in the south.

The Seljuk empire was founded by ] (1016–1063) and his brother ] (989–1060) in 1037. From their homelands near the ], the Seljuks advanced first into ] and then into mainland ], before eventually conquering eastern Anatolia. Here the Seljuks won the ] in 1071 and conquered most of Anatolia from the ], which became one of the reasons for the ] (1095–1099). From c. 1150–1250, the Seljuk empire declined, and was invaded by the ] around 1260. The Mongols divided Anatolia into ]s. Eventually one of these, the ], would conquer the rest.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Antov |first1=Nikolay |title=The Ottoman 'Wild West': The Balkan Frontier in the Fifteenth and Sixteenth Centuries |date=28 December 2017 |publisher=Cambridge University Press |isbn=978-1-316-86553-8 |pages=15–18 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=rAVADwAAQBAJ&pg=PA15 |language=en}}</ref>

===== Timurid Empire (1370–1507) =====

] {{Main|Timurid Empire}}

The ] was a Turko-Mongol empire founded in the late 14th century through military conquests led by ]. The establishment of a cosmopolitan empire was followed by the ], a period of local enrichment in ], ], ], as well as newfound economic growth.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Formica |first1=Piero |title=Entrepreneurial Renaissance: Cities Striving Towards an Era of Rebirth and Revival |date=5 April 2017 |publisher=Springer |isbn=978-3-319-52660-7 |page=18 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=EOycDgAAQBAJ&pg=PA18 |language=en}}</ref> The cultural progress of the Timurid period ended as soon as the empire collapsed in the early 16th century, leaving many intellecuals and artists to turn elsewhere in search of employment.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Blair |first1=Ann |last2=Duguid |first2=Paul |last3=Goeing |first3=Anja-Silvia |last4=Grafton |first4=Anthony |title=Information: A Historical Companion |date=26 January 2021 |publisher=Princeton University Press |isbn=978-0-691-17954-4 |page=36 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=ysHyDwAAQBAJ&pg=PA36 |language=en}}</ref>

===== Central Asian khanates (1501–1920) =====
{{Main|Khanate of Bukhara|Khanate of Khiva|Khanate of Kokand|Emirate of Bukhara}}
]
The ] was an Uzbek<ref>Peter B.Golden (2011) ''Central Asia in World History'', p.115</ref> state that existed from 1501 to 1785. The khanate was ruled by three dynasties of the ], Janids and the Uzbek dynasty of Mangits. In 1785, ], formalized the family's dynastic rule (] dynasty), and the khanate became the ] (1785–1920).<ref>]. ''A History of Inner Asia'' (2000), p. 180.</ref> In 1710, the Kokand Khanate (1710–1876) separated from the Bukhara Khanate. In 1511–1920, ] (Khiva Khanate) was ruled by the Arabshahid dynasty and the Uzbek dynasty of Kungrats.<ref>Bregel, Y. The new Uzbek states: Bukhara, Khiva and Khoqand: C. 1750–1886. In N. Di Cosmo, A. Frank, & P. Golden (Eds.), The Cambridge History of Inner Asia: The Chinggisid Age (pp. 392–411). Cambridge: Cambridge University Press 2009</ref>

===== Afsharid dynasty (1736–1796) =====
The ] was named after the Turkic Afshar tribe to which they belonged. The Afshars had migrated from ] to ] in the 13th century. The dynasty was founded in 1736 by the military commander ] who deposed the last member of the ] and proclaimed himself King of ]. Nader belonged to the Qereqlu branch of the Afshars.<ref>''Cambridge History of Iran'' Volume 7, pp. 2–4</ref> During Nader's reign, Iran reached its greatest extent since the ].

===== Qajar dynasty (1789–1925) =====
The Qajar dynasty was created by the Turkic ], ruling over Iran from 1789 to 1925.<ref name="autogenerated1">Abbas Amanat, ''The Pivot of the Universe: Nasir Al-Din Shah Qajar and the Iranian Monarchy, 1831–1896'', I. B. Tauris, pp 2–3.</ref><ref>Choueiri, Youssef M., ''A companion to the history of the Middle East'', (Blackwell Ltd., 2005), 231,516.</ref> The Qajar family took full control of Iran in 1794, deposing ], the last ] of the ], and re-asserted Iranian sovereignty over large parts of the ]. In 1796, ] seized ] with ease,<ref>{{cite book |title=Muslim World|last1=H. Scheel|last2=Jaschke|first2=Gerhard|last3=H. Braun|last4= Spuler|first4=Bertold|last5=T Koszinowski|last6=Bagley|first6=Frank|year=1981|publisher=Brill Archive|isbn=978-90-04-06196-5 |pages=65, 370|access-date=28 September 2012|url=https://books.google.com/books?id=VNgUAAAAIAAJ}}</ref> putting an end to the ], and Mohammad Khan was formally crowned as Shah after his ].<ref name="books.google.nl">]. , Penguin UK, 6 November 2008. {{ISBN|0-14-190341-4}}</ref> In the Caucasus, the Qajar dynasty permanently lost many of Iran's integral areas{{sfn|Fisher|Avery|Hambly|Melville|1991|p=330}} to the ] over the course of the 19th century, comprising modern-day ], ], ] and ].<ref name="Timothy C. Dowling pp 729">Timothy C. Dowling. , pp 728–730 ABC-CLIO, 2 December 2014 {{ISBN|1-59884-948-4}}</ref> The dynasty was founded by ] and continued until ].

==== South Asia ====
{{Multiple image|align=left|direction=vertical|image1=The Padshahnama, Jahangir presents Prince Khuram with a turban ornament.jpg||caption1=] ] presents ] with a turban ornament.}}
{{Multiple image|align=right|direction=vertical|image2=Humayun (left) with his father Babur (right), painted circa 1640 (Late Shah Jahan Album).jpg||caption2=], founder of the ] and Mughal emperor ].}}
The ] is a term used to cover five short-lived, ]-based kingdoms, two of which were of Turkic origins: the ] (1206–1290) and the ] (1320–1414). ] saw rise of the ], one of the ].
The ] was a Turko-Mongol empire that, at its greatest territorial extent, ruled most of South Asia, including ], Pakistan, India, ] and parts of ] from the early 16th to the early 18th centuries. The Mughal dynasty was founded by a ] prince named ] (reigned 1526–1530), who was descended from ] (Tamerlane) on his father's side and from Chagatai, second son of the ] ruler ], on his mother's side.<ref name="Mughal Dynasty">'']'' article:</ref><ref>] Article:</ref> A further distinction was the attempt of the Mughals to integrate Hindus and Muslims into a united Indian state.<ref name="Mughal Dynasty" /><ref>{{cite web|url=https://www.pbs.org/treasuresoftheworld/taj_mahal/tlevel_1/t1_mughal.html|title=the Mughal dynasty|website=]|access-date=18 March 2015}}</ref><ref>{{cite web|url=http://www.kamat.com/kalranga/mogul/|title=Kamat's Potpourri|access-date=18 March 2015}}</ref><ref>Babur: Encyclopædia Britannica </ref>

==== Arab world ====
]'' of ] 329 (940/941 CE), with the names of Caliph ] and Amir al-umara ] (de facto ruler of the country)]]

The Arab Muslim ] and ] fought against the pagan Turks in the ] Khaganate in the ]. Turkic soldiers in the army of the ] ] emerged as the de facto rulers of most of the Muslim Middle East (apart from ] and ]), particularly after the 10th century. Examples of regional de facto independent states include the short lived ] and ] in Egypt. The ] and other tribes captured and dominated various countries under the leadership of the ] and eventually captured the territories of the Abbasid dynasty and the ].<ref name="Carter V. Findley" />

==== Anatolia – Ottomans ====
{{Multiple image|align=left|direction=vertical|image1=OttomanEmpireIn1683.png||caption1= Ottoman empire in 1683}}
After many battles, the western ] established their own state and later constructed the ]. The main migration of the Oghuz Turks occurred in medieval times, when they spread across most of Asia and into Europe and the Middle East.<ref name="Carter V. Findley">Carter V. Findley, ''The Turks in World History'' (Oxford University Press, October 2004) {{ISBN|0-19-517726-6}}</ref> They also took part in the military encounters of the ].<ref>Moses Parkson, "Ottoman Empire and its past life" p. 98</ref> In 1090–91, the Turkic Pechenegs reached the walls of ], where Emperor ] with the aid of the Kipchaks annihilated their army.<ref>{{cite web |url=http://www.geocities.com/egfroth1/Pechenegs |title=The Pechenegs |access-date=27 October 2009 |archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20091027115640/http://www.geocities.com/egfroth1/Pechenegs |archive-date=27 October 2009 }}, Steven Lowe and Dmitriy V. Ryaboy</ref>

As the ] declined following the ], the ] emerged as the new important Turkic state, that came to dominate not only the Middle East, but even southeastern Europe, parts of southwestern Russia, and northern Africa.<ref name="Carter V. Findley" />

==== Islamization ====
Turkic peoples like the ] (mainly 8th century), ], ], ], and ] later came into contact with ]s, and most of them gradually adopted ]. Some groups of Turkic people practice other religions, including their original animistic-shamanistic religion, ], ], ] (], ], ]), ], and a small number of ].

=== Modern history ===
]
The Ottoman Empire gradually grew weaker in the face of poor administration, repeated wars with ], Austria and Hungary, and the ], and it finally gave way after World War I to the present-day ].<ref name="Carter V. Findley" />
Ethnic nationalism also developed in Ottoman Empire during the 19th century, taking the form of ] or ].

The Turkic peoples of Central Asia were not organized in nation-states during most of the 20th century, after the collapse of the ] living either in the Soviet Union or (after a short-lived ]) in the ]. For much of the 20th century, Turkey was the only independent Turkic country.<ref>{{cite book |title=Cultura Turcica |date=1964 |publisher=Türk Kültürünü Araştırma Enstitüsü |page=155 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=fDTVAAAAMAAJ |language=en}} "But the only countries that make full use of the economic potential of the Turkish World -with the exception of the only independent country of this area , namely Turkey- are Soviet Russia and China."</ref>

In 1991, after the disintegration of the ], five Turkic states gained their independence. These were ], ], ], ], and ]. Other Turkic regions such as ], ], and ] remained in the ]. ] remained part of the ]. Immediately after the independence of the Turkic states, Turkey began seeking diplomatic relations with them. Over time political meetings between the Turkic countries increased and led to the establishment of ] in 1993 and the ] in 2009, which later was renamed ] in 2021.<ref>{{cite web |title=Turkic Council's name changed to Organization of Turkic States |url=https://www.aa.com.tr/en/world/turkic-council-s-name-changed-to-organization-of-turkic-states/2419633 |website=www.aa.com.tr}}</ref>

==Physiognomy==
According to historians Joo-Yup Lee and Shuntu Kuang, Chinese official histories do not depict Turkic peoples as belonging to a single uniform entity called "Turks".{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=228}} However "Chinese histories also depict the Turkic-speaking peoples as typically possessing East/Inner Asian ], as well as occasionally having West Eurasian physiognomy."{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=228}} According to "fragmentary information on the Xiongnu language that can be found in the Chinese histories, the Xiongnu were Turkic",{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=199}} however historians have been unable to confirm whether or not they were Turkic. ]'s description of their legendary origins suggest their physiognomy was "not too different from that of... Han (漢) Chinese population",{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=199}} but a subset of Xiongnu known as the ] were described having "deep-set eyes", "high nose bridges" and "heavy facial hair".{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=199}} The Jie may have been ], although others maintaining an ] affiliation, and regardless of whether or not the Xiongnu were Turkic, they were a hybrid people.{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=228-229}} According to the '']'', ] "was not given a high military post by the Ashina rulers because of his Sogdian (''huren'' 胡人) physiognomy."{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=201}} The ] historian ] described the Hu people of his day as "blue-eyed and red bearded"{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=202}} descendants of the ], whereas "no comparable depiction of the Kök Türks or Tiele is found in the official Chinese histories."{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=202}}

] ruler named Sri Ranasrikari "The Lord who brings excellence through war" (]). In this realistic portrait, he wears the Turkic double-lapel ]. Late 7th to early 8th century CE.<ref>Göbl 1967, 254; Vondrovec tyre 254</ref><ref>{{cite web |url=http://pro.geo.univie.ac.at/projects/khm/coins/coin101?language=en |title=The Countenance of the other| last1 = Alram | first1 = Michael| last2 = Filigenzi | first2 = Anna | last3 = Kinberger | first3 = Michaela | last4 = Nell | first4 = Daniel | last5 = Pfisterer | first5 = Matthias | last6 = Vondrovec | first6 = Klaus |newspaper=Pro.geo.univie.ac.at |publisher=Kunsthistorisches Museum Vienna |access-date= 16 July 2017}}</ref><ref name="KHM13">{{cite web |url=http://pro.geo.univie.ac.at/projects/khm/showcases/showcase13?language=en |title= The Countenance of the other (The Coins of the Huns and Western Turks in Central Asia and India) 2012–2013 exhibit: 13. THE TURK SHAHIS IN KABULISTAN | last1 = Alram | first1 = Michael| last2 = Filigenzi | first2 = Anna | last3 = Kinberger | first3 = Michaela | last4 = Nell | first4 = Daniel | last5 = Pfisterer | first5 = Matthias | last6 = Vondrovec | first6 = Klaus |newspaper=Pro.geo.univie.ac.at |publisher=Kunsthistorisches Museum Vienna |access-date= 16 July 2017}}</ref>]]

Historian ] has reported that genetic testing of the proposed descendants of the Ashina tribe does seem to confirm a link to the ], emphasizing that "''the Turks as a whole 'were made up of heterogeneous and somatically dissimilar populations'''".<ref>{{cite journal |last1=Golden |first1=Peter |date=2018 |title=The Ethnogonic Tales of the Türks |url=https://journals.sagepub.com/doi/abs/10.1177/0971945818775373?journalCode=mhja |journal= The Medieval History Journal|volume=21 |issue=2 |page=314 |doi=10.1177/0971945818775373 |s2cid=166026934}} "Some DNA tests point to the Iranian connections of the Ashina and Ashide,133 highlighting further that the Turks as a whole 'were made up of heterogeneous and somatically dissimilar populations'.134"</ref> Historian ] and Professor ] have argued that West Eurasian features were typical of the royal ] of the Eastern Turkic Khaganate and that their appearance shifted to an East Asian one due to intermarriage with foreign nobility. As a result, by the time of ] (684 AD), members of the Ashina dynasty had East Asian features.<ref name="Wang2018">{{cite book |last1=Wang |first1=Penglin |title=Linguistic Mysteries of Ethnonyms in Inner Asia |date=2018 |publisher=Lexington |isbn=978-1-4985-3528-1 |page=190 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=mOdRDwAAQBAJ&pg=PA190}}</ref><ref name="Esin1980">{{cite book |last1=Esin |first1=Emel |title=A History of Pre-Islamic and Early-Islamic Turkish Culture|date=1980 |publisher=Ünal Matbaasi |location=Istanbul |page=116}} "The Chinese sources of the ] period describe the turcophone Kirgiz with green eyes and red hair. They must have been in majority Europeoids although intermarriages with the Chinese had begun long ago. The Kök-Türk kagan ] was also depicted with blue eyes and an elongated ruddy face. Probably as a result of the repeated marriages, the members of the Kök-Türk dynasty (pl. XLVII/a), and particularly ], had frankly Mongoloid features. Perhaps in the hope of finding an occasion to claim rulership over China, or because the high birth of the mother warranted seniority, the Inner Asian monarchs sought alliances165 with dynasties reigning in China."</ref> A 2023 genetic study found that ] (568–578 AD), a Royal Göktürk, had nearly entirely ] origin, weakening the "western Eurasian origin and multiple origin hypotheses".<ref name="Yang 2023"/> Lee and Kuang believe it is likely "early and medieval Turkic peoples themselves did not form a homogeneous entity and that some of them, non-Turkic by origin, had become Turkicised at some point in history."{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=226}} They also suggest that many modern Turkic-speaking populations are not directly descended from early Turkic peoples.{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=226}} Lee and Kuang concluded that "both medieval Chinese histories and modern DNA studies point to the fact that the early and medieval Turkic peoples were made up of heterogeneous and somatically dissimilar populations."{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=198}}

Like Chinese historians, Medieval Muslim writers generally depicted the Turks as having an East Asian appearance.{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=207}} Unlike Chinese historians, Medieval Muslim writers used the term "Turk" broadly to refer to not only Turkic-speaking peoples but also various non-Turkic speaking peoples,{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=207}} such as the ], ], ], and ]. In the 13th century, ] referred to the people of Tibet and the mountains between Tibet and Bengal as "Turks" and "people with Turkish features."<ref name="Wink2002">{{cite book|url=https://books.google.com/books?id=uQ7k2vQlYxEC&pg=PA69|title=Al-Hind: The Slavic Kings and the Islamic conquest, 11th–13th centuries|author=André Wink|publisher=BRILL|year=2002|isbn=978-0-391-04174-5|pages=68–69|quote=Even then, the term 'Turk' was still applied in a loose sense, and we find for instance the Magyars (Majghari) or the Rus described as Turks by the same Muslim writers.70 And this is a fact which cannot be explained by assuming that these were people who were under the rule of the Turks, or, in other words, by assuming that the word is always used as a political-territorial ethnonym.71 Tibetans are also frequently confused with Turks, for instance by Al-Biruni, who speaks of 'Turks from Tibet' and 'Turks of Tibetan origin' }}</ref> Medieval Arab and Persian descriptions of Turks state that they looked strange from their perspective and were extremely physically different from Arabs. Turks were described as "broad faced people with small eyes", having light-colored, often reddish hair, and with pink skin,<ref name="AmitaiBiran2005">{{cite book|url=https://books.google.com/books?id=s9EmAQAAMAAJ&q=One+of+the+issues+that+most+occupied+the+travelers+was+the+physiognomy+of+the+Turks.+Both+mentally+and+physically,+Turks+appeared+to+the+Arab+authors+as+very+different+from+themselves|title=Mongols, Turks, and Others: Eurasian Nomads and the Sedentary World|author1=Reuven Amitai|author2=Michal Biran|publisher=Brill|year=2005|isbn=978-90-04-14096-7|pages=222–223}}: "One of the issues that most occupied the travelers was the physiognomy of the Turks.120 Both mentally and physically, Turks appeared to the Arab authors as very different from themselves.121 The shape of these "broad faced people with small eyes" and their physique impressed the travelers crossing the Eurasian lands." "According to this explanation: Because of the Turks' distance from the course of the sun and from the sun's rising and descending, the snow in their lands is abundant and coldness and humidity dominate it. This caused the bodies of this land's inhabitants to become mellow and their epidermis thick.124 Their sleek hair is spare and its colour is pale with an inclination to red. Due to the cold weather of their surroundings, coldness dominates their temper. In effect, the cold climate breeds abundant flesh. The arctic temperature compresses the heat and makes it visible. This gives them their pink skin. It is noticeable among the people who have bulky bodies and pale colour. Whilst a chilly wind hits them, their faces, lips, fingers and legs became red. This is because while they were warm their blood expanded, and then the cold temperature caused it to amass."</ref> as being "short, with small eyes, nostrils, and mouths" (]), as being "full-faced with small eyes" (]), as possessing "a large head (''sar-i buzurg''), a broad face (''rūy-i pahn''), narrow eyes (''chashmhā-i tang''), and a flat nose (''bīnī-i pakhch''), and unpleasing lips and teeth (''lab va dandān na nīkū'')" (]).<ref name="Lee & Kuang 2017">Lee & Kuang (2017) "A Comparative Analysis of Chinese Historical Sources and Y-DNA Studies with Regard to the Early and Medieval Turkic Peoples", Inner Asia 19. p. 207-208 of 197–239 Quote: "The Chinese histories also depict the Turkic-speaking peoples as typically possessing East/Inner Asian physiognomy, as well as occasionally having West Eurasian physiognomy. DNA studies corroborate such characterisation of the Turkic peoples."</ref> On ] coins "the faces of the governor and governess are clearly Mongoloid (a roundish face, narrow eyes), and the portrait have definite old Türk features (long hair, absence of headdress of the governor, a tricorn headdress of the governess)".<ref name="Babayar2013">{{cite journal|last= Babayar|first=Gaybulla|title= The Imperial Titles on the Coins of the Western Turkic Qaghanate|journal= History of Central Asia in Modern Medieval Studies|page= 331|year= 2013|location= Tashkent|publisher= Yangi Nashr|url= https://www.academia.edu/8860030}}</ref> ] portrait, Palace of ]. ] noted that the ], the small mouth and the strongly slanted eyes were characteristically Turkic.<ref name="jstor.org"/>]] In the ]' residential palace of ], there survives a partially conserved portrait depicting a turbaned and haloed adolescent figure with full cheeks, slanted eyes, and a small, sinuous mouth.<ref name="jstor.org">{{cite journal |last1=Schlumberger |first1=Daniel |title=Le Palais ghaznévide de Lashkari Bazar |journal=Syria |date=1952 |volume=29 |issue=3/4 |page=263 & 267|doi=10.3406/syria.1952.4789 |jstor=4390312 |issn=0039-7946}}</ref> The Armenian historian ] describes the Turks of the ] as "broad-faced, without eyelashes, and with long flowing hair like women".<ref>Movses 105.</ref>

] writes that the ] in Yengi-kent near the mouth of the ] "are distinguished from other Turks by their valour, their slanted eyes, and the smallness of their stature."{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=207}} Later Muslim writers noted a change in the physiognomy of Oghuz Turks. According to ], "because of the climate their features gradually changed into those of Tajiks. Since they were not Tajiks, the Tajik peoples called them ''turkmān'', i.e. Turk-like (''Turk-mānand'')." Ḥāfiẓ Tanīsh Mīr Muḥammad Bukhārī also related that the Oghuz' 'Turkic face did not remain as it was' after their migration into ] and ]. ] khan ] wrote in his ] treatise '']'' (Genealogy of the Turkmens) that "their chin started to become narrow, their eyes started to become large, their faces started to become small, and their noses started to become big' after five or six generations". Ottoman historian ] commented in ''Künhüʾl-aḫbār'' that Anatolian Turks and Ottoman elites are ethnically mixed: "Most of the inhabitants of ] are of confused ethnic origin. Among its notables there are few whose lineage does not go back to a convert to Islam."<ref>Lee & Kuang (2017) "A Comparative Analysis of Chinese Historical Sources and Y-DNA Studies with Regard to the Early and Medieval Turkic Peoples", Inner Asia 19. p. 208 of 197–239</ref>

Kevin Alan Brook states that like "most nomadic Turks, the Western Turkic ] were racially and ethnically mixed."{{sfn|Brook|2018|p=3}} ] described Khazars as having black hair while ] described them as having blue eyes, light skin, and reddish hair. Istakhri mentions that there were "Black Khazars" and "White Khazars." Most scholars believe these were political designations: black being lower class while white being higher class. Constantin Zuckerman argues that these "had physical and racial differences and explained that they stemmed from the merger of the Khazars with the Barsils."{{sfn|Brook|2018|p=4}} ] sources called the Khazars the "White Ugry" and the Magyars the "Black Ugry."{{sfn|Brook|2018|p=5}} Soviet excavated Khazar remains show Slavic-type, European-type, and a minority Mongoloid-type skulls.{{sfn|Brook|2018|p=4}}

The ] are mentioned in the '']'' as having the same script and language as the ] but "The people are all tall and
big and have red hair, white faces, and green eyes."{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=204}}{{NoteTag|9th-century author ] described the Kyrgyz tribe (''Jiankun buluo'' 堅昆部落) as "yellow-haired, green-eyed, red-mustached bearded".<ref>''Youyang Zazu'' txt: "堅昆部落 其人髮黃, 目綠, 赤髭髯"</ref> ] (finished in 1060) describes ], a medieval Turkic people, as resembling Kyrgyzes<ref>''Xin Tangshu'', txt: "又有駁馬者,或曰弊剌,曰遏羅支, 人貌多似結骨,而語不相通。" tr: "There are also Piebald-Horse folk, also called either Bila or Eluozhi . peoples' faces much resemble Kyrghyzes', yet the languages are not mutually intelligible."</ref> who were "all tall, red-haired, pale-faced, green-irised";<ref>Xin Tangshu, "vol. 217b", txt: "黠戛斯,古堅昆國也。 或曰居勿,曰結骨。 人皆長大,赤髮、皙面、綠瞳"</ref> New Book of Tang also states that Kyrgyzes regarded black hair as "infelicitous" and insisted that black-eyed individuals were descendants of ] general ].<ref>''Xin Tangshu'', "vol. 217b", txt: "以黑髮為不祥。黑瞳者,必曰陵苗裔也"</ref>}} The ''New Book of Tang'' also states that the neighboring Boma tribe resembled the Kyrgyz but their language was different, which may imply the Kyrgyz were originally a non-Turkic people, who were later Turkicized through inter-tribal marriages.{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=204}} According to ], the Kyrgyz were mixed with "Saqlabs" (Slavs), which explains the red hair and white skin among the Kyrgyz, while the ''New Book'' states that the Kyrgyz "intermixed with the Dingling."{{sfn|Brook|2018|p=3-4}}{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=204-205}} The Kyrgyz "regarded those with black eyes as descending from Ling," a ] general who defected to the Xiongnu.{{sfn|Lee|Kuang|2017|p=215}}

In a Chinese legal statute from the early period of the ], the ] are described as having blond hair and ] eyes. It also states that they had a "vile" and "peculiar" appearance, and that some Chinese people would not want to marry them.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Jaschok |first1=Maria |title=The history of women's mosques in Chinese Islam: a mosque of their own |date=2013 |publisher=Taylor and Francis |isbn=978-1-136-83880-4 |page=73 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=KV9UAQAAQBAJ&pg=PA73}} ""....''Qincha'' have yellow hair and blue eyes' (''Ming Lu Ji Jue Fu Li'', Vol. 6, 1969 copy)."</ref><ref>{{cite book |last1=Weiner |first1=Michael |title=Routledge Handbook of Race and Ethnicity in Asia |date=2021 |publisher=Routledge |location=Abingdon, Oxon |isbn=978-1-351-24668-2 |page=200 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=8BY-EAAAQBAJ&pg=PT200}} "To illustrate the complexity of the Ming-Muslim relationship, consider a legal statute" "...Kipchaks have light hair and blue eyes. Their appearance is vile and peculiar, so there are those who do not wish to marry them." (Da Ming lü jijie fuli 6.36b)</ref> Russian anthropologist Oshanin (1964: 24, 32) notes that "the 'Mongoloid' phenotype, characteristic of modern Kazakhs and Qirghiz, prevails among the skulls of the Qipchaq and Pecheneg nomads found in the kurgans in eastern Ukraine"; Lee & Kuang (2017) propose that Oshanin's discovery is explainable by assuming that the historical Kipchaks' modern descendants are ] of the ], whose men possess a high frequency of haplogroup C2's subclade C2b1b1 (59.7 to 78%). Lee and Kuang also suggest that the high frequency (63.9%) of the Y-DNA haplogroup R-M73 among Karakypshaks (a tribe within the Kipchaks) allows inference about the genetics of Karakypshaks' medieval ancestors, thus explaining why some medieval Kipchaks were described as possessing "blue eyes and red hair.<ref>Lee & Kuang (2017). p. 213, 217–218, 225–226</ref>

Byzantine historians of the 11th-12th centuries provided description of Turkmens as very different from the Greeks. ], a French traveller to the ], met with sultan ] in ], and described him in the following terms: "In the first place, as I have seen him frequently, I shall say that he is a little, short, thick man, with the physiognomy of a ]. He has a broad and brown face, high cheek bones, a round beard, a great and crooked nose, with little eyes".<ref>{{cite book |last1=Vryonis |first1=Speros Jr |title=The Decline of Medieval Hellenism in Asia Minor and the Process of Islamization from the Eleventh through the Fifteenth Century |date=1971 |publisher=University of California Press |location=Berkeley |page=278 |url=https://archive.org/details/vryonis-1971-dmh/Vryonis_1971_DMH/page/278/mode/2up?q=tartar |language=English}}</ref>

=== Remarks ===
{{NoteFoot}}

== Archaeology ==
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]

== International organizations ==
] members.]]
{{further|Pan-Turkism}}There are several international organizations created with the purpose of furthering cooperation between countries with Turkic-speaking populations, such as the ] (TÜRKSOY) and the Parliamentary Assembly of Turkic-speaking Countries (TÜRKPA) and the ].
]
The ] – Organization of the Eurasian Law Enforcement Agencies with Military Status, was established on 25 January 2013. It is an ] ] ] (]) organization of currently three Turkic countries (], ] and ]) and ] as observer.

=== TÜRKSOY ===
Türksoy carries out activities to strengthen cultural ties between Turkic peoples. One of the main goals to transmit their common cultural heritage to future generations and promote it around the world.<ref name=":0">{{cite web|url=http://www.turksoy.org/en/turksoy/about|title=About :: TURKSOY|last=Polat|first=Orhan|website=turksoy.org|access-date=17 May 2016}}</ref>

Every year, one city in the Turkic world is selected as the "Cultural Capital of the Turkic World". Within the framework of events to celebrate the Cultural Capital of the Turkic World, numerous cultural events are held, gathering artists, scholars and intellectuals, giving them the opportunity to exchange their experiences, as well as promoting the city in question internationally.<ref name=":1">{{cite web|url=http://www.turksoy.org/en/news/2016/04/29/cultural-capital-of-the-turkic-world-2016-sheki|title=Cultural Capital of the Turkic World 2016: Sheki :: TURKSOY|last=Polat|first=Orhan|website=turksoy.org|access-date=17 May 2016}}</ref>

=== Organization of Turkic States ===
The ], founded on 3 November 2009, by the ''Nakhchivan Agreement'' confederation, ], ] and ], aims to integrate these organizations into a tighter geopolitical framework.

The member countries are ], ], ], ] and ].<ref>{{Cite news|url=https://www.rferl.org/a/uzbekistan-officially-applies-for-membership-in-turkic-council/30162275.html|title=Uzbekistan Officially Applies For Membership In Turkic Council|newspaper=Radio Free Europe/Radio Liberty|date=13 September 2019 }}</ref> The idea of setting up this cooperative council was first put forward by Kazakh President ] back in 2006. ] has announced to be interested in joining the Organization of Turkic States. Since August 2018, Hungary has official observer status in the Organization of Turkic States.<ref>"Press Release of the Sixth Summit of the Turkic Council". Turkic Council. Retrieved 4 September 2018.</ref> ] also joined as an observer state to the organization at 8th summit.<ref>{{Cite web|date=13 November 2021|title=Turkic Council reforms into Organization of Turkic States|url=https://www.trtworld.com/turkey/turkic-council-reforms-into-organization-of-turkic-states-51608|website=TRT World}}</ref> ] was admitted to the organization as observer member at the ].<ref>{{cite news |title=Turkish Cyprus gains Organization of Turkic States observer status |url=https://www.dailysabah.com/politics/diplomacy/turkish-cyprus-gains-organization-of-turkic-states-observer-status |access-date=11 November 2022 |work=Daily Sabah |date=11 November 2022}}</ref><ref>{{cite news |title=Organization of Turkic States pledges observer status for Turkish Cyprus – Türkiye News |url=https://www.hurriyetdailynews.com/summit-of-organization-of-turkic-states-kicks-off-in-samarkand-178419 |access-date=11 November 2022 |work=Hürriyet Daily News |date=11 November 2022 |language=en}}</ref>

== Demographics ==
], painting from 1812, Paris]]
The distribution of people of Turkic cultural background ranges from ], across Central Asia, to Southern Europe. {{As of | 2011}} the largest groups of Turkic people live throughout Central Asia—], ], ], ], and ], in addition to ] and ]. Additionally, Turkic people are found within ], ] region of western ], northern ], ], ], ], ], and the ]: ], ], ], ] and former ].

A small number of Turkic people also live in ], the capital of ]. Small numbers inhabit eastern ] and the south-eastern part of ].<ref>Substantial numbers (possibly several millions) of maghrebis of the former Ottoman colonies in North Africa are of Ottoman Turkish descent. ]</ref> There are also considerable populations of Turkic people (originating mostly from ]) in ], ], and ], largely because of migrations during the 20th century.

Sometimes ethnographers group Turkic people into six branches: the ], ], ], ]n, ], and ] branches. The Oghuz have been termed Western Turks, while the remaining five, in such a classificatory scheme, are called Eastern Turks.{{Citation needed|date=September 2022}}

The genetic distances between the different populations of Uzbeks scattered across Uzbekistan is no greater than the distance between many of them and the Karakalpaks. This suggests that Karakalpaks and Uzbeks have very similar origins. The Karakalpaks have a somewhat greater bias towards the eastern markers than the Uzbeks.<ref>''The Karakalpak Gene Pool'' (Spencer Wells, 2001); and discussion and conclusions at www.karakalpak.com/genetics.html</ref>

'''Historical population:'''

{| class="wikitable"
|-
! Year !! Population
|-
| 1 AD|| 2–2.5 million?
|-
| 2013 || 150–200 million
|}

The following incomplete list of Turkic people shows the respective groups' core areas of settlement and their estimated sizes (in millions):
{| class="wikitable sortable" id="table1"
|-
! People
! Primary homeland
! Population
! Modern language
! Predominant religion and sect
|-
| ]
| ]
|data-sort-value="70000"| 70 M
| ]
| Sunni Islam
|-
| ]
| ], ]
|data-sort-value="35000"| 30–35 M
| ]
| Shia Islam (65%), Sunni Islam (35%)<ref>{{cite web| url = http://www.scwra.gov.az/az/view/news/522/allahshukur-pashazade-azerbaycanda-mezhebler-arasinda-fikirayriligindan-istifade-etmek-isteyen-dushmenler-choxdur| title = "Şeyxülislam qeyd edib ki, Azərbaycanda 35 faiz sünni, 65 faiz isə şiə məzhəbinə mənsub…"}}</ref><ref>{{cite web|url=http://files.preslib.az/projects/remz/pdf_en/atr_din.pdf|title=Religion|publisher=Administrative Department of the President of the Republic of Azerbaijan — Presidential Library|archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20111123084541/http://files.preslib.az/projects/remz/pdf_en/atr_din.pdf|url-status=live|archive-date=23 November 2011}} Религия. Управление делами Президента Азербайджанской Республики&nbsp;— Президентская библиотека</ref> (]).
|-
| ]
| ]
|data-sort-value="28300"| 28.3 M
| ]
| Sunni Islam
|-
| ]
| ]
|data-sort-value="13800"| 13.8 M
| ]
| Sunni Islam
|-
| ]
| ] (China)
|data-sort-value="9000"| 9 M
| ]
| Sunni Islam
|-
| ]
| ]
|data-sort-value="8000"| 8 M
| ]
| Sunni Islam
|-
| ]
| ] (Russia)
|data-sort-value="7000"| 7 M
| ]
| Sunni Islam
|-
| ]
| ]
|data-sort-value="4500"| 4.5 M
| ]
| Sunni Islam
|-
| ]
| ] (Russia)
|data-sort-value="2000"| 2 M
| ]
| Sunni Islam
|-
| ]
| ] (Russia/Ukraine)
|data-sort-value="2000"| 0.5 to 2 M
| ]
| Sunni Islam
|-
| ]
| ] (Russia)
|data-sort-value="1700"| 1.7 M
| ]
| Orthodox Christianity
|-
| ]
| ] (Iran)
|data-sort-value="900"| 0.9 M
| ]
| Shia Islam
|-
| ]
| ] (Uzbekistan)
|data-sort-value="600"| 0.6 M
| ]
| Sunni Islam
|-
| ]
| ] (Russia)
|data-sort-value="500"| 0.5 M
| ]
| Orthodox Christianity and Turkic Paganism
|-
| ]
| ] (Russia)
|data-sort-value="400"| 0.4 M
| ]
| Sunni Islam
|-
| ]s and ]s
| ] and ] (Russia)
|data-sort-value="400"| 0.4 M
| ]
| Sunni Islam
|-
| ]
| ] (Russia)
|data-sort-value="300"|0.3 M
| ]
| Tibetan Buddhism
|-
| ]
| ] (Moldova)
|data-sort-value="200"| 0.2 M
| ]
| Orthodox Christianity
|-
| ] and ]
| ]
|data-sort-value="4"| 0.004 M
| ] and ]
| Judaism
|}

== Cuisine ==
Markets in the steppe region had a limited range of foodstuffs available—mostly ]s, ]s, ], and ]. Turks mostly herded ], ]s and ]s. Dairy was a staple of the nomadic diet and there are many Turkic words for various dairy products such as ''süt'' (milk), ''yagh'' (butter), ], '']'' (similar to ]), ] (fermented mare's milk) and '']'' (dried yoghurt). During the Middle Ages ], ] and ], who were historically part of the Turkic nomadic group known as the ], continued to develop new variations of dairy products.<ref name=osfc>{{Cite book| title = Food on the Move| publisher=] |date=1996 |chapter=The Horseback Kitchen of Central Asia |isbn=978-0-907325-79-6 |access-date = 16 July 2018| chapter-url = https://books.google.com/books?id=uYqTiD7SbcQC}}</ref>

Nomadic Turks cooked their meals in a '']'', a pot similar to a ]; a wooden rack called a ''qasqan'' can be used to prepare certain steamed foods, like the traditional meat dumplings called '']''. They also used a ''saj'', a griddle that was traditionally placed on stones over a fire, and '']''. In later times, the Persian ] was borrowed from the Persians for frying, but traditionally nomadic Turks did most of their cooking using the qazan, saj and shish. Meals were served in a bowl, called a ''chanaq'', and eaten with a knife (''bïchaq'') and spoon (''qashi̅q''). Both bowl and spoon were historically made from wood. Other traditional utensils used in food preparation included a thin rolling pin called ''oqlaghu'', a ] called ''süzgu̅çh'', and a grinding stone called ''tāgirmān''.<ref name=osfc />

Medieval grain dishes included preparations of whole grains, soups, porridges, breads and pastries. Fried or toasted whole grains were called ''qawïrmach'', while ''köchä'' was crushed grain that was cooked with dairy products. ''Salma'' were broad ] that could be served with boiled or roasted meat; cut noodles were called ''tutmaj'' in the Middle Ages and are called '']'' today.<ref name=osfc />

There are many types of bread doughs in Turkic cuisine. '']'' is the thinnest type of dough, '']'' is a type of fried bread dough, and '']'' is a deep fried flat bread. '']'' is a fried bread that may be sprinkled with dried fruit or meat, rolled, and sliced like ]. '']'' and '']'' are varieties of bread, and ] is a type of filled pie ].<ref name=osfc />

Herd animals were usually slaughtered during the winter months and various types of sausages were prepared to preserve the meats, including a type of sausage called '']''. Though prohibited by ], historically Turkic nomads also had a variety of ]. One type of sausage, called '']'', was made from horsemeat and another variety was filled with a mixture of ground meat, ] and rice. Chopped meat was called ''qïyma'' and spit-roasted meat was ''söklünch''—from the root ''sök-'' meaning "to tear off", the latter dish is known as ] in modern times. '']'' is a typical fried meat dish, and '']'' is a soup of noodles and lamb.<ref name=osfc />

== Religion ==
=== Early Turkic mythology and Tengrism ===
].]]
] of Shamans 1911]]
{{Main|Turkic mythology|Tengrism|Shamanism}}
Early ] was dominated by ], ] and ]. The Turkic animistic traditions were mostly focused on ], ]-] and ]. Later this animistic tradition would form the more organized Tengrism.{{citation needed|date=September 2021}} The chief deity was ], a ], worshipped by the upper classes of early Turkic society until ] was introduced as the official religion of the ] in 763.

The ] symbolizes honour and is also considered the mother of most Turkic peoples. ] is the wolf mother of ], the first Khan of the ]. The ] and ], such as the ] or ], are also main figures of Turkic mythology.{{Citation needed|date=April 2019}}

=== Religious conversions ===

==== Buddhism ====
] played an important role in the history of Turkic peoples, with the first Turkic state adopting and supporting the spread of Buddhism being the Turkic Shahis and the Göktürks. The Göktürks syncretized Buddhism with their traditional religion ] and also incorporated elements of the Iranian traditional religions, such as ]. Buddhism had its height among the ] in the ] region.<ref>{{Cite web |title=History of Buddhism among the Turkic People |url=https://studybuddhism.com/en/advanced-studies/history-culture/buddhism-in-central-asia/history-of-buddhism-among-the-turkic-people |access-date=3 December 2022 |website=studybuddhism.com |language=en}}</ref> Buddhism had also considerable impact and influence onto various other historical Turkic groups. In pre-Islamic times, Buddhism and ] coexisted, with several Buddhist temples, monasteries, figures and steles, with images of Buddhist characters and sceneries, were constructed by various Turkic tribes. Throughout ], there exist various historical Buddhist sites, including an underground Buddhist cave monastery. After the ], and the spread of Islam among locals, Buddhism (and Tengrism) started to lose ground, however a certain influence of the Buddhist teachings remained during the next centuries.<ref>{{Cite web |title=Buddhism history in Kazakhstan · · "Kazakhstan History" portal |url=http://edu.e-history.kz/en/contents/view/686 |access-date=15 September 2022 |website=edu.e-history.kz |language=en |archive-date=20 September 2022 |archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20220920172727/http://edu.e-history.kz/en/contents/view/686 |url-status=dead }}</ref>

Tengri Bögü Khan initially made the now extinct ] the state religion of the ] in 763 and it was also popular among the ]. It was gradually replaced by the ].{{citation needed|date=May 2014}} It existed in the Buddhist Uyghur ] up to the 12th century.<ref>{{cite web|url=http://www.eurasianhistory.com/data/articles/j02/1686.html|title=关于回鹘摩尼教史的几个问题|access-date=18 March 2015}}</ref>

], or ] was the main religion after Manichaeism.<ref>{{cite web|url=http://www.xjass.com/mzwh/content/2008-09/08/content_29600.htm|title=元明时期的新疆藏传佛教|access-date=18 March 2015|archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20160304092501/http://www.xjass.com/mzwh/content/2008-09/08/content_29600.htm|archive-date=4 March 2016}}</ref> They worshipped ],<ref>{{cite web|url=http://www.xjass.com/ls/content/2009-11/15/content_117347.htm|title=回鹘文《陶师本生》及其特点|access-date=18 March 2015|archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20130506102536/http://www.xjass.com/ls/content/2009-11/15/content_117347.htm|archive-date=6 May 2013}}</ref> ]<ref>{{Cite web |url=http://www.tanghistory.net/data/articles/d02/621.html |title=回鹘观音信仰考 |access-date=3 April 2011 |archive-date=22 March 2012 |archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20120322065047/http://www.tanghistory.net/data/articles/d02/621.html }}</ref> and ].<ref>{{cite web|url=http://ccbs.ntu.edu.tw/FULLTEXT/JR-BJ001/93572.htm|title=回鶻彌勒信仰考|access-date=18 March 2015}}</ref> Turkic ] and west ] attributed with a rapid and almost total disappearance of it and other religions in North India and Central Asia. The ] "Yellow Yughurs" of Western China, as well as the ] of Russia are the only remaining ] Turkic peoples.<ref>{{Cite book|last1=Minahan|first1=James|url=https://books.google.com/books?id=Zu5GpDby9H0C&q=tuvans&pg=PA1935|title=Encyclopedia of the Stateless Nations: S-Z|last2=Wendel|first2=Peter T.|publisher=Greenwood Publishing Group|year=2002|isbn=978-0-313-32384-3|page=1937|language=en}}</ref>

==== Islam ====
], the largest mosque in Central Asia.]]
Most Turkic people today are ] ], although a significant number in Turkey are ]s. Alevi Turks, who were once primarily dwelling in eastern Anatolia, are today concentrated in major urban centers in western Turkey with the increased urbanism. Turkic Sunni Muslims generally follow the ] rite. Azeris are traditionally Shiite Muslims. Religious observance is less strict in the Republic of Azerbaijan compared to Iranian Azerbaijan.

] Islam first made contact with the Turkic peoples in 642, when Muslim armies crossed the ] after toppling the ] the year before. Some of the earliest rulers to convert to Islam were the Turkic princes of the city-states in the region of ]. Mass conversions did not take place until the ] in 751, in which Turkic tribes sided with the Arabs against Chinese forces, which marked a significant milestone in the history of Islam in the region. From then onwards much of the Turkic heartland became Muslim.<ref>. ]. Retrieved 21 May 2024</ref> In the 19th century, Turkic Muslim progressives in the Russian Empire spearheaded a reformist movement called ], calling for a return to basic Islamic beliefs while simultaneously accepting modernist trends.

==== Christianity ====
{{Main|Turkic Christians}}
]]]
] (thirteenth/fourteenth century) with ] inscriptions]]
The major Christian-Turkic peoples are the ] of ] and the ] (''Gökoğuz'') of ], the vast majority of ] and the ] are ].<ref>Menz, Astrid. (2007). . 10.5771/9783956506925-123.</ref><ref name="Cole 2011 74">{{Cite book|last=Cole|first=Jeffrey|url=https://books.google.com/books?id=Wlth0GRi0N0C&q=chuvash+ethnic+group&pg=PA73|title=Ethnic Groups of Europe: An Encyclopedia|date=2011|publisher=ABC-CLIO|isbn=978-1-59884-302-6|page=74|language=en}}</ref><ref>{{cite web|first = Michael |last = Lipka|url= https://www.trtworld.com/opinion/the-gagauz-christian-turks-between-two-worlds-57426|title=The Gagauz: 'Christian Turks' between two worlds |date =22 May 2022 |publisher=TRT World}}</ref> The traditional religion of the ] of Russia, while containing many ancient Turkic concepts, also shares some elements with ], ] Judaism, and Islam.
The Chuvash converted to ] for the most part in the second half of the 19th century.<ref name="Cole 2011 74" /> As a result, festivals and rites were made to coincide with Orthodox feasts, and Christian rites replaced their traditional counterparts. A minority of the Chuvash still profess their traditional faith.<ref>Guide to Russia: {{Webarchive|url=https://web.archive.org/web/20050501105730/http://russiatoday.strana.ru/en/profile/people/nat/1482.html |date=1 May 2005 }}</ref> Between the 9th and 14th centuries, ] was popular among Turks such as the ].<ref>{{cite web|url=http://dsr.nii.ac.jp/narratives/discovery/09/index.html.zh|title=景教艺术在西域之发现|access-date=18 March 2015}}</ref> It even revived in Gaochang and expanded in ] in the ] period.<ref> {{Webarchive|url=https://web.archive.org/web/20110817230447/http://hk.plm.org.cn/e_book/xz-16914.pdf |date=17 August 2011 }}</ref><ref>{{Cite web|url=http://zzs.chd.edu.cn/kjqk/xbjzgcxyxb-shkx/xbjz2006/0603pdf/060316.pdf|archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20111130074300/http://zzs.chd.edu.cn/kjqk/xbjzgcxyxb-shkx/xbjz2006/0603pdf/060316.pdf|title=唐代中围景教与景教本部教会的关系|archive-date=30 November 2011}}</ref><ref>{{cite web|url=http://www.xjass.com/mzwh/content/2008-06/30/content_14081.htm|title=景教在西域的传播|access-date=18 March 2015|archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20160304101519/http://www.xjass.com/mzwh/content/2008-06/30/content_14081.htm|archive-date=4 March 2016}}</ref> It disappeared after its collapse.<ref>{{cite web|url=http://www.stnn.cc/geography/200607/t20060704_270851.html|title=新闻_星岛环球网|access-date=18 March 2015|archive-date=30 October 2012|archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20121030195656/http://www.stnn.cc/geography/200607/t20060704_270851.html}}</ref><ref>{{cite web| url = http://www.hkbu.edu.hk/~lewi/WPS/97%20_Duan.pdf| title = 7–11 世紀景教在陸上絲綢之路的傳播| access-date = 3 April 2011| archive-date = 30 December 2011| archive-url = https://web.archive.org/web/20111230170352/http://www.hkbu.edu.hk/~lewi/WPS/97%20_Duan.pdf}}</ref>

] are a sub-group of the ], and the vast majority are ].<ref>{{Cite book|last=Akiner|first=Shirin|title=Islamic peoples of the Soviet Union: with an appendix on the non-Muslim Turkic peoples of the Soviet Union: an historical and statistical handbook|publisher=KPI|year=1986|isbn=0-7103-0188-X|edition=2nd|location=London|pages=431–432}}<</ref> ] are an indigenous Turkic people in Russia, most Nağaybäk are Christian and were largely converted during the 18th century.<ref>{{Cite book |last=Akiner |first=Shirin |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=Gd-3AAAAQBAJ |title=Islamic Peoples Of The Soviet Union |date=1986 |publisher=Routledge |isbn=978-1-136-14274-1 |page=100 |language=en}}</ref> Many ] were ] by ] during the 16th century, and continued to Christianized under subsequent Russian rulers and Orthodox clergy up to the mid-eighteenth century.<ref>{{Cite book|last=Yemelianova|first=Galina M.|title=Russia and Islam: A Historical Survey|url=https://archive.org/details/russiaislamhisto00yeme|url-access=limited|publisher=Palgrave|year=2002|isbn=0-333-68354-4|pages=–41}}</ref>


==== Animism ====
Comparisons to the ancient ] (which they label as ]) to modern Turkic languages show common vocabulary. Based on these comparisons it is claimed that the Sumerians were the most ancient documented Turkic people, that they originated from east of the ] but established a civilization in ]. Others dismiss this as an expression of pan-Turkist ideology, pointing out that most linguists consider Sumerian a ], while a few others connect it to the ] languages. Further, the classification of languages into an Ural-Altaic group is often criticised, due to perceived lack of evidence and perceived lack of obvious similarties between languages classified as such.
Today there are several groups that support a revival of the ancient traditions. Especially after the collapse of the ], many in ] converted or openly practice animistic and shamanistic rituals. It is estimated that about 60% of ] practice a form of animistic rituals. In ] there are about 54,000 followers of the ancient traditions.<ref>{{cite news|url=https://www.rferl.org/a/kyrgyz_religious_hatred_trial_throws_spotlight_on_ancient_creed/24469022.html|title=Kyrgyz Religious Hatred Trial Throws Spotlight On Ancient Creed|newspaper=Radio Free Europe/Radio Liberty|date=February 2012 |language=en|access-date=18 April 2019|last1=Ashakeeva |first1=Gulaiym |last2=Najibullah |first2=Farangis }}</ref><ref>{{cite web|url=https://www.worldatlas.com/articles/religious-beliefs-in-kazakhstan.html|title=Religion in Kazakhstan|website=WorldAtlas|language=en|access-date=18 April 2019}}</ref>


==== Muslim Turks and non-Muslim Turks ====
Some scholars will also consider the ], whose origins go back to ], as one of the earlier Turkic tribes.
] ]]]
The Uyghur Turks, who once belonged to a variety of religions, were gradually Islamized during a period spanning the 10th and 13th centuries. Some scholars have linked the phenomenon of recently Islamized Uyghur soldiers recruited by the ] to the slow conversion of Uyghur populations to Islam.<ref>{{cite book |last1=Roberts |first1=Sean R. |title=The War on the Uyghurs: China's Internal Campaign against a Muslim Minority |date=8 September 2020 |publisher=Princeton University Press |isbn=978-0-691-20221-1 |page=8 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=z8vADwAAQBAJ&pg=PA8 |language=en}}</ref><ref>{{cite book |last1=Frankel |first1=James |title=Islam in China |date=17 June 2021 |publisher=Bloomsbury Publishing |isbn=978-0-7556-3884-0 |page=77 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=JostEAAAQBAJ&pg=PT77 |language=en}}</ref>


The non-Muslim Turks' worship of ] and other gods was mocked and insulted by the Muslim Turk ], who wrote a verse referring to them – ''The Infidels – May God destroy them!''<ref>{{cite book|url=https://books.google.com/books?id=KaYZAQAAIAAJ&q=The+Infidels+-+May+God+destroy+them+Turks|title=From Mahmud Kaşgari to Evliya Çelebi|author=Robert Dankoff|publisher=Isis Press|year=2008|isbn=978-975-428-366-2|page=81}}</ref><ref name="Dankoff 68–80">{{cite journal|author1-link=Robert Dankoff|last=Dankoff|first=Robert|date=Jan–Mar 1975|title=Kāšġarī on the Beliefs and Superstitions of the Turks|journal=Journal of the American Oriental Society|volume=95|pages=68–80|doi=10.2307/599159|jstor=599159|number=1}}</ref>
Leaving these controversies aside, the precise date of the initial expansion from the early homeland remains unknown. The first state known as "Turk" giving its name to the many states and people afterwards, was that of the ] (''gog'' = 'blue' or 'celestial') in the ] AD.


The Basmil, Yabāḳu and Uyghur states were among the Turkic peoples who fought against the Kara-Khanids spread of Islam. The Islamic Kara-Khanids were made out of ], Yaghma, Çiğil and Karluk.<ref name="GibbLewis1998">{{cite book|url=https://books.google.com/books?id=PJPrAAAAMAAJ&q=kara-khanids+inherited+islam+uyghur|title=The Encyclopaedia of Islam|author1=Hamilton Alexander Rosskeen Gibb|author2=Bernard Lewis|author3=Johannes Hendrik Kramers|author4=Charles Pellat|author5=Joseph Schacht|publisher=Brill|year=1998|page=689}}</ref>
Later Turkic peoples include the ] (mainly 8th century), ], ], ] (or &#x11E;uz) Turks, and ]. As these peoples were founding states in the area between ] and ], they came into contact with the Muslim people and gradually adopted ]. However, there were also (and still are) Turkic people belonging to different religions, including ], ]s (see ]), ], and ].


Kashgari claimed that the Prophet assisted in a miraculous event where 700,000 Yabāqu infidels were defeated by 40,000 Muslims led by Arslān Tegīn claiming that fires shot sparks from gates located on a green mountain towards the Yabāqu.<ref>{{cite book|url=https://books.google.com/books?id=KaYZAQAAIAAJ&q=green+mountain+gates+sparks+infidel+buddha|title=From Mahmud Kaşgari to Evliya Çelebi|author=Robert Dankoff|publisher=Isis Press|year=2008|isbn=978-975-428-366-2|page=79}}</ref> The Yabaqu were a Turkic people.<ref>{{cite book|url=https://books.google.com/books?id=_v6IWkCLnEwC&q=yabaqu&pg=PA147|title=Early Mystics in Turkish Literature|author1=Mehmet Fuat Köprülü|author2=Gary Leiser|author3=Robert Dankoff|publisher=Psychology Press|year=2006|isbn=978-0-415-36686-1|pages=147–}}</ref>
Turkic soldiers in the army of the ] ] emerged as ''de facto'' rulers of most of the Muslim Middle East (except ] and ]), particularly after the 10th century. ] and other tribes captured and dominated various countries under the leadership of the ] and eventually captured the territories of the Abbasid dynasty and the ].


] insulted the Uyghur Buddhists as "Uighur dogs" and called them "Tats", which referred to the "Uighur infidels" according to the Tuxsi and Taghma, while other Turks called Persians "tat".<ref>{{cite journal |url=http://projects.iq.harvard.edu/huri/files/viii-iv_1979-1980_part1.pdf |title=Harvard Ukrainian Studies Eucharisterion: Essays Presented to Omeljan Pritsak on his Sixtieth Birthday by his Colleagues and Students |journal=Harvard Ukrainian Studies |editor-last1=Ševčenko |editor-first1=Ihor |editor-last2=Sysyn |editor-first2=Frank E. |volume=III/IV 1979–1980 |publisher=Harvard University |location=Cambridge, Massachusetts |date=1980 |issn=0363-5570 |archive-url=https://web.archive.org/web/20151118063834/http://projects.iq.harvard.edu/huri/files/viii-iv_1979-1980_part1.pdf |archive-date=18 November 2015 |page=160}}</ref><ref>{{cite book|url=https://books.google.com/books?id=KTYMAQAAMAAJ&q=aqtimiz+furxan+burxan|title=Harvard Ukrainian studies|author=Harvard Ukrainian Research Institute|publisher=Harvard Ukrainian Research Institute|year=1980|page=160}}</ref> While Kashgari displayed a different attitude towards the Turks diviners beliefs and "national customs", he expressed towards Buddhism a hatred in his Diwan where he wrote the verse cycle on the war against Uighur Buddhists. Buddhist origin words like toyin (a cleric or priest) and Burxān or Furxan (meaning Buddha, acquiring the generic meaning of "idol" in the Turkic language of Kashgari) had negative connotations to Muslim Turks.<ref>{{cite book|url=https://books.google.com/books?id=KaYZAQAAIAAJ&q=idol+Buddha+provenance+Toyin|title=From Mahmud Kaşgari to Evliya Çelebi|author=Robert Dankoff|publisher=Isis Press|year=2008|isbn=978-975-428-366-2|page=79}}</ref><ref name="Dankoff 68–80" /> ]
Meanwhile, Kirghiz and Uighurs were struggling with each other and with the mighty Chinese Empire. Kirghiz people finally settled in the region that is now referred to as Kyrgyzstan. ] peoples conquered ] in what is today ] following the westward sweep of the Mongols under ] in the 13th century. Bulgars was named ''tatars'' by Russians mistakenly. Native Tatars lives only in Asia, European tatars are in fact Bulgars. (Bulgars came to Europe in 7-8th century). Everywhere, Turkic groups mixed to some extent with other local populations.
] dressed in "Turkic" long coats, 6th–8th c.]]


== Old sports ==
As the Seljuks declined after the Mongol invasion, the ] emerged as a new important Turkic state which came to dominate not only the Middle East, but also southeastern Europe and parts of southwestern Russia and northern Africa. Meanwhile, other Turkic groups founded dynasties in Iran (like the ]) and northern ] (the ]).
=== Tepuk ===
] in his '']'', described a game called "tepuk" among Turks in Central Asia. In the game, people try to attack each other's castle by kicking a ball made of sheep leather.<ref>{{cite book|publisher=Atatürk Kültür Merkezi|year=2009|volume=6|title=Uluslararası Türk Kültürü Kongresi Bildirileri|page=2128}}</ref> (see also: ])


=== Kyz kuu ===
The Ottoman Empire grew weaker in the face of repeated wars with Russia and Austria and the emergence of nationalist movements in the Balkans, and finally gave way after ] to the present-day republic of ].
].]]


] (chase the girl) has been played by Turkic people at festivals since time immemorial.<ref>{{cite book|last1=Mayor|first1=Adrienne|title=The Amazons: Lives and Legends of Warrior Women across the Ancient World|date=22 September 2014 |publisher=Princeton University Press.|isbn=978-1-4008-6513-0 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=rboWBAAAQBAJ&dq=kyz+kuu&pg=PA397}}</ref>
== Geographical Distribution and ethnic division ==
Presently, the largest group of Turkic people currently is living in ]. Other major Turkic people live in ], ], ], ], ], ], ], and ]. Additionally, other Turkic people live in ], the ] region of western ], northern ], ], ], and the ] (particularly in ], ], ] and former ]). A small number of Turkic people also live in Vilnius of Lithuania.


=== Jereed ===
An exact line between the different Turkic people cannot be drawn easily. The following is a non-comprehensive list of the major groups:
Horses have been essential and even sacred animals for Turks living as nomadic tribes in the Central Asian steppes. Turks were born, grew up, lived, fought and died on horseback. ] became the most important sporting and ceremonial game of Turkish people.<ref>{{cite web|last=Burak|first=Sansal|url=http://www.allaboutturkey.com/javelin.htm|title=Turkish Jereed (Javelin)|publisher=All About Turkey|access-date=16 November 2016}}</ref>
*]
*]
*]
*]
*]
*]s
*]
*]s
*]
*]
*]
*]
*]
*]
*]
*]
*]s
*]
*]
*]
*]
*]
*]


=== Kokpar ===
Some people divide the above into six branches: the ], ], ], ], ], and Saha/] branches.
The ] began with the nomadic Turkic peoples who have come from farther north and east spreading westward from China and Mongolia between the 10th and 15th centuries.<ref>{{cite book|last1=Christensen|first1=karen|last2=Levinson|first2=David|title=Encyclopedia of World Sport: From Ancient Times to the Present|year=1999 |publisher=Oxford University Press |isbn=978-0-19-513195-6 |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=Q8NMAgAAQBAJ&dq=buzkashi+turkic&pg=PA68}}</ref>


=== Jigit ===
One of the major difficulties perceived by many who try to classify the various Turkic languages, dialects, peoples and ethnic groups is the impact ] and particularly ]'s nationality policies, creation of new national demarcations and mass deportations had on the ethnic mix in previously largely multicultural regions like ]/], ] and ]. Many of the above mentioned classifications are therefore by no means generally accepted, neither in detail nor in general. Another aspect often debated is the influence of ] and the emerging ] in the newly independent Central Asian republics on the perception of ethnic divisions.
"]" is used in the Caucasus and Central Asia to describe a skillful and brave equestrian, or a brave person in general.<ref>{{cite web|title=ДЖИГИТ|language=ru|url=http://dic.academic.ru/dic.nsf/ushakov/788222|work=dic.academic.ru}}</ref>


== Physical Appearance == == Gallery ==
===Battle, hunting and blacksmithing scenes in Turkic rock art of the early Middle Ages in Altai===
Turkic peoples often differ in physical appearance. The majority of Turkic people from western China to eastern Europe seem to possess certain ] characteristics. Some have very light features including blue eyes and blondish/reddish hair although most Turkic people look Mediterranean, having brown or black hair and eyes, and olive to dark skin features. In some Turkic areas, the existence of peoples who have light skin features as well as light hair and eyes with a Mongolian facial structure is common (like some Uzbeks and Tatars). The majority of Turkic people seem to have high cheek bones, round heads, and straight hair.
<gallery>
File:Turk_vassal_blacksmiths_under_Mongolian_rule.jpg|Turk vassal blacksmiths under Mongolian rule
File:Turkic hunting scene, Gokturk period Altai.png|Turkic hunting scene, Gokturk period Altai
File:Battle scene of a Turkic horseman with typical long hair (Gokturk period, Altai).png|Battle scene of a Turkic horseman with typical long hair (Gokturk period, Altai)


</gallery>
There has been much debate about the ] origin of Turkic people, with some assuming a Ural-Altaic race comprising of ]s, ]s, ]s, Turkic peoples, ]s and ]s, others assuming a separate Turkic race, partially mixed with Mongols. Others again point out that many languages have commonly been adopted either by choice or by force by racially diverse people. The current common understanding is to assume at least a partial separation of linguistic and racial heritage, based on the multitude of invasions, wars, empires, population movements in the region and the general disrepute all racial origin theories have fallen in recent times.


=== Bezeklik caves and Mogao grottoes ===
== Religion ==
Images of Buddhist and Manichean ] from the ] and ].
Most Turkic people are ] ]. But many people in Eastern Turkey are ]s and most of the Turkic people of Iran and the Republic of Azerbaijan are ] Muslims.
<gallery>
File:Dunhuang Uighur king.jpg|Old Uyghur king from Turfan, from the murals at the Dunhuang Mogao Caves.
File:Uighur prince from Bezeklik murals.jpg|Old Uyghur prince from the Bezeklik murals.
File:Uighur woman from Bezeklik murals.jpg|Old Uyghur woman from the Bezeklik murals.
File:UighurPrincess.png|Old Uyghur Princess.
File:Museum für Indische Kunst Dahlem Berlin Mai 2006 064.jpg|Old Uyghur Princesses from the Bezeklik murals.
File:Museum für Indische Kunst Dahlem Berlin Mai 2006 063.jpg|Old Uyghur Princes from the Bezeklik murals.
File:Uigure-bezeklik-17.jpg|Old Uyghur Prince from the Bezeklik murals.
File:Uigure-bezeklik-19.jpg|Old Uyghur noble from the Bezeklik murals.
File:Manichaean Temple Banner (MIK III 6283).jpg|Old Uyghur ] Elect depicted on a temple banner from ].
File:Museum für Indische Kunst Dahlem Berlin Mai 2006 067.jpg|Old Uyghur donor from the Bezeklik murals.
File:ManichaeanElectaeKocho10thCentury.jpg|Old Uyghur Manichaean Electae from Qocho.
File:Museum für Indische Kunst Dahlem Berlin Mai 2006 066.jpg|Old Uyghur Manichaean clergymen from Qocho.
File:Museum für Indische Kunst Dahlem Berlin Mai 2006 061.jpg|].
File:Manicheans.jpg|Manicheans from Qocho
</gallery>


=== Medieval times ===
The Chuvash of Russia and the Gagauz of Moldova are largely ]s.
<gallery>
File:Omurtag1.jpg|Khan ] of ], from the Chronicle of ].
File:Portrait from the Palace courtroom, Lashkari Bazar.jpg|] portrait, Palace of ].<ref name="jstor.org"/>
</gallery>


=== Modern times ===
Some Turkic people (particularly in the Russian autonomic regions and republics of ], ], and ]) are largely ]s. Shamanism was the predominant religion of the different Turkic branches prior to the ], when the majority accepted Islam.
<gallery mode="packed-hover" heights="150">
File:Azerigirls.JPG|] girls in traditional dress.
File:Young bashqorts.jpg|] boys in national dress.
File:Головной убор чувашской девушки тухъя. XIX век. Средненизовая этнографическая группы (анат енчи).jpg|A ] girl in traditional dress.
File:Хакасы.JPG|] with traditional instruments.
File:Ногайцы 01.jpg|] man in national costume.
File:Dursunbey yerelkıyafeti.JPG|Turkish girls in their traditional clothes, ], ].
File:Turkman girl in national dress.jpg|] girl in national dress.
File:Мөгелер биле Даңгыналар2. 2016.jpg|] men and women in ], ].
File:Kazakh man in traditional costume.jpg|] man in traditional clothing.
File:Samsa or Somsa in Uzbekistan.jpg|] with traditional cuisine.
File:KyrgyzEagleHuntsman.jpg|] traditional eagle hunter.
File:Tuvan shamans19.jpg|] traditional shaman.
</gallery>


== See also ==
There are also a few Buddhist, Jewish, Zoroastian, and Baha'i Turkic people.


{{Div col}}
== "Turkish World" and "Pan-Turkism" ==
* ]
Some refer to the Turkic countries, regions and peoples as part of the "Turkish World". Others are worried that this is a result and example of ], designed to encourage hegemonial or even imperialistic aims of modern day Turkey. The distribution of Alevis turks are balanced throughtout the east and west ends of Turkey.
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
* ]
{{Div col end}}


== References ==
Proponents of the term point out that in a similar fashion many ] also feel to be part of a greater "Arab World". It is also said that encouragement of this cultural and linguistic affinity can be used as a vehicle to regional development and increased regional security.
{{reflist}}


== Sources ==
Opponents point to the ] and the ] past of modern Turkey, the role of the pan-Turkic movements in the ] in Russia, and the cultural, religious, and political diversity of the many Turkic peoples and ethnic groups and feel that a movement to greater pan-Turkic unity might be a negative influence on the region.
{{refbegin|20em}}
* {{Cite thesis |last=Baydar |first=Ayça |date=2016 |title=The Turcophone Orthodox Christians from Coexistence to Ethno-religious Homogenisation: A study of the 'Karamanlidhika' Press during the Greek-Turkish War and the Population Exchange |chapter=Chapter One – Introduction |chapter-url=https://www.academia.edu/43265726 |publisher=] |pages=9–33}}
* {{citation|last=Brook|first=Kevin Alan|year=2018|title=The Jews of Khazaria|publisher=Rowman & Littlefield}}
* {{cite web |url=https://www.britannica.com/topic/Turkic-peoples |title=Turkic peoples |website=] |publisher=] |access-date=21 June 2020 |ref={{harvid|Encyclopedia Britannica. Turkic peoples}}}}
* {{cite journal |last1=Damgaard |first1=P. B. |last2=Marchi |first2=N. |display-authors=1 |date=9 May 2018 |title=137 ancient human genomes from across the Eurasian steppes |url=https://www.nature.com/articles/s41586-018-0094-2 |access-date=11 April 2020 |journal=] |publisher=] |volume=557 |issue=7705 |pages=369–373 |bibcode= 2018Natur.557..369D|doi=10.1038/s41586-018-0094-2 |pmid=29743675 |hdl=1887/3202709 |s2cid=13670282 |ref={{harvid|Damgaard et al.|2018}}|hdl-access=free }}
* {{cite book |last1=Dickens |first1=Mark |date=2018 |chapter=Scythians (Saka) |chapter-url=https://www.oxfordreference.com/view/10.1093/acref/9780198662778.001.0001/acref-9780198662778-e-4250 |editor1-last=Nicholson |editor1-first=Oliver |title=The Oxford Dictionary of Late Antiquity |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=A09WDwAAQBAJ |publisher=] |pages=1346–1347 |isbn=978-0-19-174445-7 |access-date=27 April 2020}}
* {{cite book | last=Findley | first=Carter V. | date = 2005 | title = The Turks in World History | publisher = Oxford University Press, USA | pages = |isbn=978-0-19-517726-8 | url = https://books.google.com/books?id=ToAjDgAAQBAJ}}
* {{cite book | last1 = Fisher | first1 = William Bayne | last2 = Avery | first2= P. | last3 = Hambly | first3 = G. R. G | last4 = Melville | first4 = C. | title = The Cambridge History of Iran | volume = 7 | url = https://books.google.com/books?id=H20Xt157iYUC&pg=PA330 | publisher = ] | location = Cambridge | year = 1991 |isbn=978-0-521-20095-0}}
* {{cite book|last=Golden|first=Peter Benjamin|title=Studies on the peoples and cultures of the Eurasian steppes|date=2011|publisher=Ed. Acad. Române|location=Bucureşti|isbn=978-973-1871-96-7}}
* {{cite encyclopedia |last=Ivantchik |first=Askold |author-link=Askold Ivantchik |title=Scythians |url=https://www.iranicaonline.org/articles/scythians |encyclopedia=] |date=2018 |publisher=]; ] |location=], ] |access-date=8 August 2022 }}
* {{cite book |last1=Janhunen |first1=Juha |author-link1=Juha Janhunen |year=2003 |chapter=Ethnicity and language in prehistoric Northeast Asia |editor-last1=Blench |editor-first1=Roger |editor-link1=Roger Blench |editor-last2=Spriggs |editor-first2=Matthew |editor-link2=Matthew Spriggs |title=Archaeology and Language II: Archaeological Data and Linguistic Hypotheses |url=https://books.google.com/books?id=48iKiprsRMwC |series=] |volume=29 |publisher=] |pages=195–208 |isbn=0-415-11761-5 }}
* {{cite book | last = Khanbaghi | first = Aptin | title = The Fire, the Star and the Cross: Minority Religions in Medieval and Early Modern Iran | publisher = I.B. Tauris | year = 2006 |isbn=978-1-84511-056-7}}
* {{cite journal |last1=Lee |first1=Joo-Yup |last2=Kuang |first2=Shuntu |date=18 October 2017 |title=A Comparative Analysis of Chinese Historical Sources and Y-DNA Studies with Regard to the Early and Medieval Turkic Peoples |url=https://brill.com/view/journals/inas/19/2/article-p197_197.xml |access-date=20 June 2020 |journal=Inner Asia |publisher=] |volume=19 |issue=2 |pages=197–239 |doi=10.1163/22105018-12340089 |issn=2210-5018 |doi-access=free }}
* {{cite book | last=Lee | first=Joo-Yup | title=The Turkic Peoples in World History | publisher=Routledge | year=2023 | isbn=978-1-000-90421-5 |doi=10.4324/9781003256496}}
* {{cite journal |last1=Li |first1=Tao |last2=Ning |first2=Chao |display-authors=1 |date=June 2020 |title=Millet agriculture dispersed from Northeast China to the Russian Far East: Integrating archaeology, genetics, and linguistics |journal=Archaeological Research in Asia |publisher=] |volume=22 |issue=100177 |page= 100177|doi=10.1016/j.ara.2020.100177 |doi-access=free |ref={{harvid|Li et al.|2020}}|hdl=21.11116/0000-0005-D82B-8 |hdl-access=free }}
* {{cite book |last=Mecit |first=Songül |title=The Rum Seljuqs: Evolution of a Dynasty |year=2014 |publisher=Routledge |isbn=978-1-134-50899-0 }}
* {{cite journal |last1=Nelson |first1=Sarah |author-link1=Sarah Milledge Nelson |last2=Zhushchikhovskaya |first2=Irina |display-authors=1 |date=14 February 2020 |title=Tracing population movements in ancient East Asia through the linguistics and archaeology of textile production |journal=Evolutionary Human Sciences |publisher=] |volume=2 |issue=e5 |pages=e5 |doi=10.1017/ehs.2020.4 |pmid=37588355 |pmc=10427276 |doi-access=free |ref={{harvid|Nelson et al.|2020}}}}
* {{cite book |editor1-last=Peacock |editor1-first=A.C.S. |editor2-last=Yıldız |editor2-first=Sara Nur |title=The Seljuks of Anatolia: Court and Society in the Medieval Middle East |year=2013 |publisher=I.B.Tauris |isbn=978-1-84885-887-9 }}
* {{cite journal |last1=Robbeets |first1=Martine |author-link1=Martine Robbeets |date=1 January 2017 |title=Austronesian influence and Transeurasian ancestry in Japanese |url=https://brill.com/view/journals/ldc/7/2/article-p210_4.xml |access-date=20 June 2020 |journal=Language Dynamics and Change |publisher=] |volume=8 |issue=2 |pages=210–251 |doi=10.1163/22105832-00702005 |doi-access=free |issn=2210-5832 |hdl=11858/00-001M-0000-002E-8635-7 |hdl-access=free }}
* {{cite book |last1=Robbeets |first1=Martine |author-link1=Martine Robbeets |year=2020 |chapter=The Transeurasian homeland: where, what and when? |chapter-url=https://www.academia.edu/43039094 |editor-last1=Robbeets |editor-first1=Martine |editor-link1=Martine Robbeets |editor-last2=Savelyev |editor-first2=Alexander |title=The Oxford Guide to the Transeurasian Languages |url=https://global.oup.com/academic/product/the-oxford-guide-to-the-transeurasian-languages-9780198804628 |publisher=] |isbn=978-0-19-880462-8 }}
* {{Cite book | last=Tekin | first=Talat | title=Irk bitig (the book of omens) | place=Wiesbaden | publisher=Otto Harrassowitz | year=1993 |isbn=978-3-447-03426-5 | url=http://altaica.ru/LIBRARY/Tekin%20Talat/Tekin_Irk%20Bitig%20-%20The%20Book%20of%20Omens%201993.pdf }}
* {{cite journal |last1=Uchiyama|first1=Junzo|last2=Gillam|first2=J. Christopher|last3=Savelyev|first3=Alexander|last4=Ning|first4=Chao|display-authors=1|date=21 May 2020 |title=Populations dynamics in Northern Eurasian forests: a long-term perspective from Northeast Asia |journal=Evolutionary Human Sciences |publisher=] |volume= 2|pages=e16 |doi=10.1017/ehs.2020.11 |pmid=37588381 |pmc=10427466 |doi-access=free }} ] Text was copied from this source, which is available under a .
* {{cite book |last=de la Vaissière |first=Étienne |title=The Cambridge Companion to the Age of Attila |publisher=Cambridge University Press |year=2015 |isbn=978-1-107-63388-9 |editor-last=Maas |editor-first=Michael |pages=175–192 |chapter=The Steppe World and the Rise of the Huns |author-link=Étienne de la Vaissière }}
* {{cite journal |last1=Yang |first1=Xiao-Min |last2=Meng |first2=Hai-Liang |last3=Zhang |first3=Jian-Lin |date=17 November 2023 |title=Ancient genome of Empress Ashina reveals the Northeast Asian origin of Göktürk Khanate |url=https://onlinelibrary.wiley.com/doi/abs/10.1111/jse.12938 |journal=Journal of Systematics and Evolution |language=en |volume=61 |issue=6 |pages=1056–1064 |doi=10.1111/jse.12938 |issn=1674-4918 |s2cid=255690237}}
* {{cite book | last = Yarshater | first = Ehsan | title = Encyclopedia Iranica | publisher = Routledge & Kegan Paul | year = 2001 |isbn=978-0-933273-56-6}}
* {{cite journal |last1=Yunusbayev |first1=Bayazit |last2=Metspalu |first2=Mait |display-authors=1 |date=21 April 2015 |title=The Genetic Legacy of the Expansion of Turkic-Speaking Nomads across Eurasia |journal=] |publisher=] |volume=11 |issue=4 |pages= e1005068|doi=10.1371/journal.pgen.1005068 |pmc=4405460 |pmid=25898006 |ref={{harvid|Yunusbayev et al.|2015}} |doi-access=free }}
{{refend}}


==See also== == Further reading ==
*]
*]
*]


* Amanjolov A.S., "History of the Ancient Turkic Script", Almaty, "Mektep", 2003, {{ISBN|9965-16-204-2}}
==External links==
* Baichorov S.Ya., "Ancient Turkic runic monuments of the Europe", Stavropol, 1989 (in Russian).
* Baskakov, N.A. 1962, 1969. ''Introduction to the study of the Turkic languages''. Moscow (in Russian).
* ] (2009): ''Empires of the Silk Road: A History of Central Eurasia from the Bronze Age to the Present''. Princeton: Princeton University Press. {{ISBN|978-0-691-13589-2}}.
* Boeschoten, Hendrik & Lars Johanson. 2006. ''Turkic languages in contact''. Turcologica, Bd. 61. Wiesbaden: Harrassowitz. {{ISBN|3-447-05212-0}}.
* ] (1900): ''Documents sur les Tou-kiue (Turcs) occidentaux.'' Paris, Librairie d'Amérique et d'Orient. Reprint: Taipei. Cheng Wen Publishing Co. 1969.
* Clausen, Gerard. 1972. ''An etymological dictionary of pre-thirteenth-century Turkish''. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
* Deny, Jean et al. 1959–1964. ''Philologiae Turcicae Fundamenta''. Wiesbaden: Harrassowitz.
* {{Cite EB1911|wstitle= Turks | volume= 27 |last= Eliot |first=Charles Norton Edgcumbe |author1-link= Charles Eliot (diplomat) | pages = 468&ndash;473 |short=1}}
* Findley, Carter Vaughn. 2005. ''The Turks in World History''. Oxford University Press. {{ISBN|0-19-516770-8}}; {{ISBN|0-19-517726-6}} (pbk.)
* Golden, Peter B. ''An introduction to the history of the Turkic peoples: Ethnogenesis and state-formation in medieval and early modern Eurasia and the Middle East'' (Otto Harrassowitz (Wiesbaden) 1992) {{ISBN|3-447-03274-X}}
* {{cite book|author=Peter B. Golden|title=An Introduction to the History of the Turkic Peoples: Ethnogenesis and State-formation in Medieval and Early Modern Eurasia and the Middle East|url=https://www.researchgate.net/publication/281319978|year= 1992|publisher=O. Harrassowitz|isbn=978-3-447-03274-2}}
* Heywood, Colin. ''The Turks (The Peoples of Europe)'' (Blackwell 2005), {{ISBN|978-0-631-15897-4}}.
* Hostler, Charles Warren. ''The Turks of Central Asia'' (Greenwood Press, November 1993), {{ISBN|0-275-93931-6}}.
* Ishjatms N., "Nomads In Eastern Central Asia", in the "History of civilizations of Central Asia", Volume 2, UNESCO Publishing, 1996, {{ISBN|92-3-102846-4}}.
* Johanson, Lars & Éva Agnes Csató (ed.). 1998. ''The Turkic languages''. London: Routledge. {{ISBN|0-415-08200-5}}.
* Johanson, Lars. 1998. "The history of Turkic." In: Johanson & Csató, pp.&nbsp;81–125. {{Webarchive|url=https://web.archive.org/web/20110408063746/http://www.turkiclanguages.com/www/classification.html |date=8 April 2011 }}
* Johanson, Lars. 1998. "Turkic languages." In: ''Encyclopædia Britannica''. CD 98. Encyclopædia Britannica Online, 5 September. 2007. .
* Karatay, Osman. The Genesis of the Turks: An Ethno-Linguistic Inquiry into the Prehistory of Central Eurasia. United Kingdom, Cambridge Scholars Publishing., 2022.
* Kyzlasov I.L., "Runic Scripts of Eurasian Steppes", Moscow, Eastern Literature, 1994, {{ISBN|5-02-017741-5}}.
* Lebedynsky, Iaroslav. (2006). ''Les Saces: Les « Scythes » d'Asie, VIII<sup>e</sup> siècle apr. J.-C.'' Editions Errance, Paris. {{ISBN|2-87772-337-2}}.
* Malov S.E., "Monuments of the ancient Turkic inscriptions. Texts and research", M.-L., 1951 (in Russian).
* Mukhamadiev A., "Turanian Writing", in "Problems Of Lingo-Ethno-History Of The Tatar People", Kazan, 1995 (Азгар Мухамадиев, "Туранская Письменность", "Проблемы лингвоэтноистории татарского народа", Казань, 1995) (in Russian).
* Menges, K. H. 1968. ''The Turkic languages and peoples: An introduction to Turkic studies''. Wiesbaden: Harrassowitz.
* Öztopçu, Kurtuluş. 1996. Dictionary of the Turkic languages: English, Azerbaijani, Kazakh, Kyrgyz, Tatar, Turkish, Turkmen, Uighur, Uzbek. London: Routledge. {{ISBN|0-415-14198-2}}
* Alpamysh, H.B. Paksoy: (Hartford: AACAR, 1989)
* {{cite book|author=H. B. Paksoy|title=Alpamysh: Central Asian Identity Under Russian Rule|url=https://books.google.com/books?id=_KkOGNefbfsC&q=burxan+furxan|year=1989|publisher=AACAR|isbn=978-0-9621379-9-0}}
* Samoilovich, A. N. 1922. ''Some additions to the classification of the Turkish languages''. Petrograd.
* Schönig, Claus. 1997–1998. "A new attempt to classify the Turkic languages I-III." ''Turkic Languages'' 1:1.117–133, 1:2.262–277, 2:1.130–151.
* Vasiliev D.D. Graphical fund of Turkic runiform writing monuments in Asian areal. М., 198 (in Russian).
* Vasiliev D.D. Corpus of Turkic runiform monuments in the basin of Enisei. М., 1983 (in Russian).
* Voegelin, C.F. & F.M. Voegelin. 1977. ''Classification and index of the World's languages''. New York: Elsevier.


== External links ==
*
{{Wiktionary|Türk}}
*
{{Commons category|Turkic peoples}}
*
{{EB1911 poster|Turks}}
*
* at ]
*
*
*
*
*
*
*
*
*


{{Clear}}
]
{{Turkic peoples}}
{{Turkic topics}}
{{Authority control}}


]
]
]
]
]
]
]
]
]

Latest revision as of 15:18, 24 December 2024

Family of ethnic groups of Eurasia Not to be confused with Turkish people.

Ethnic group
Turkic peoples
The distribution of the Turkic languages
Total population
Over 170 million
Regions with significant populations
 Turkey60,000,000–65,000,000
 Uzbekistan31,900,000
 Iran15,000,000–20,000,000 (18% of population)
 Russia12,751,502
 Kazakhstan12,300,000
 China13,500,000
 Azerbaijan10,000,000
European Union European Union5,876,318 (Bulgaria 508,375)
 Afghanistan4,600,000–5,300,000 (2017)
 Turkmenistan4,233,600
 Kyrgyzstan4,500,000
 Iraq3,000,000
 Tajikistan1,200,000
 United States1,000,000+
 Syria800,000–1,000,000+
 Ukraine398,600
 Northern Cyprus313,626
 Australia59,488 (Turkish)
 Mongolia135,618
 Lebanon200,000
 Moldova126,010
 North Macedonia81,900
Languages
Turkic languages
Religion
Mostly Islam (Sunni · Shia)
Minorities:
Non-religious · Christianity · Buddhism · Judaism · Indigenous shamanism (Tengrism)

The Turkic peoples are a collection of diverse ethnic groups of West, Central, East, and North Asia as well as parts of Europe, who speak Turkic languages.

According to historians and linguists, the Proto-Turkic language originated in Central-East Asia, potentially in Altai-Sayan region, Mongolia or Tuva. Initially, Proto-Turkic speakers were potentially both hunter-gatherers and farmers; they later became nomadic pastoralists. Early and medieval Turkic groups exhibited a wide range of both East Asian and West-Eurasian physical appearances and genetic origins, in part through long-term contact with neighboring peoples such as Iranic, Mongolic, Tocharian, Uralic and Yeniseian peoples.

Many vastly differing ethnic groups have throughout history become part of the Turkic peoples through language shift, acculturation, conquest, intermixing, adoption, and religious conversion. Nevertheless, Turkic peoples share, to varying degrees, non-linguistic characteristics like cultural traits, ancestry from a common gene pool, and historical experiences. Some of the most notable modern Turkic ethnic groups include the Altai people, Azerbaijanis, Chuvash people, Gagauz people, Kazakhs, Kyrgyz people, Turkmens, Turkish people, Tuvans, Uyghurs, Uzbeks, and Yakuts.

Etymology

Map from Kashgari's Diwan (11th century), showing the distribution of Turkic tribes.
Bust of Kul Tigin (AD 684–731), prince of the Second Turkic Khaganate, found in Khashaat, Arkhangai Province, Orkhon River valley. National Museum of Mongolia.

The first known mention of the term Turk (Old Turkic: 𐱅𐰇𐰼𐰰 Türük or 𐱅𐰇𐰼𐰰:𐰜𐰇𐰛 Kök Türük, Chinese: 突厥, Pinyin: Tūjué < Middle Chinese *tɦut-kyat < *dwət-kuɑt, Old Tibetan: drugu) applied to only one Turkic group, namely, the Göktürks, who were also mentioned, as türüg ~ török, in the 6th-century Khüis Tolgoi inscription, most likely not later than 587 AD. A letter by Ishbara Qaghan to Emperor Wen of Sui in 585 described him as "the Great Turk Khan". The Bugut (584 CE) and Orkhon inscriptions (735 CE) use the terms Türküt, Türk and Türük.

During the first century CE, Pomponius Mela refers to the Turcae in the forests north of the Sea of Azov, and Pliny the Elder lists the Tyrcae among the people of the same area. However, English archaeologist Ellis Minns contended that Tyrcae Τῦρκαι is "a false correction" for Iyrcae Ἱύρκαι, a people who dwelt beyond the Thyssagetae, according to Herodotus (Histories, iv. 22), and were likely Ugric ancestors of Magyars. There are references to certain groups in antiquity whose names might have been foreign transcriptions of Tür(ü)k, such as Togarma, Turukha/Turuška, Turukku and so on; but the information gap is so substantial that any connection of these ancient people to the modern Turks is not possible.

The Chinese Book of Zhou (7th century) presents an etymology of the name Turk as derived from 'helmet', explaining that this name comes from the shape of a mountain where they worked in the Altai Mountains. Hungarian scholar András Róna-Tas (1991) pointed to a Khotanese-Saka word, tturakä 'lid', semantically stretchable to 'helmet', as a possible source for this folk etymology, yet Golden thinks this connection requires more data.

It is generally accepted that the name Türk is ultimately derived from the Old-Turkic migration-term 𐱅𐰇𐰼𐰰 Türük/Törük, which means 'created, born' or 'strong'. Turkologist Peter B. Golden agrees that the term Turk has roots in Old Turkic, yet is not convinced by attempts to link Dili, Dingling, Chile, Tele, and Tiele, which possibly transcribed *tegrek (probably meaning 'cart'), to Tujue, which transliterated to Türküt.

Scholars, including Toru Haneda, Onogawa Hidemi, and Geng Shimin believed that Di, Dili, Dingling, Chile and Tujue all came from the Turkic word Türk, which means 'powerful' and 'strength', and its plural form is Türküt. Even though Gerhard Doerfer supports the proposal that türk means 'strong' in general, Gerard Clauson points out that "the word türk is never used in the generalized sense of 'strong'" and that türk was originally a noun and meant "'the culminating point of maturity' (of a fruit, human being, etc.), but more often used as an meaning (of a fruit) 'just fully ripe'; (of a human being) 'in the prime of life, young, and vigorous'". Hakan Aydemir (2022) also contends that Türk originally did not mean "strong, powerful" but "gathered; united, allied, confederated" and was derived from Pre-Proto-Turkic verb *türü "heap up, collect, gather, assemble".

The earliest Turkic-speaking peoples identifiable in Chinese sources are the Yenisei Kyrgyz and Xinli, located in South Siberia. Another example of an early Turkic population would be the Dingling.

In Late Antiquity itself, as well as in and the Middle Ages, the name "Scythians" was used in Greco-Roman and Byzantine literature for various groups of nomadic "barbarians" living on the Pontic-Caspian Steppe who were not related to the actual Scythians. Medieval European chroniclers subsumed various Turkic peoples of the Eurasian steppe as "Scythians". Between 400 CE and the 16th century, Byzantine sources use the name Σκύθαι (Skuthai) in reference to twelve different Turkic peoples.

In the modern Turkish language as used in the Republic of Turkey, a distinction is made between "Turks" and the "Turkic peoples" in loosely speaking: the term Türk corresponds specifically to the "Turkish-speaking" people (in this context, "Turkish-speaking" is considered the same as "Turkic-speaking"), while the term Türki refers generally to the people of modern "Turkic Republics" (Türki Cumhuriyetler or Türk Cumhuriyetleri). However, the proper usage of the term is based on the linguistic classification in order to avoid any political sense. In short, the term Türki can be used for Türk or vice versa.

List of ethnic groups

List of modern Turkic peoples
Ethnonym Population Region(s) Religion
Turks 60,000,000–65,000,000  Turkey,  Northern Cyprus Sunni Islam, Alevism
Azerbaijanis 31,300,000  Azerbaijan,  Dagestan (Russian Federation) Shia Islam, Sunni Islam
Uzbeks 30,700,000  Uzbekistan Sunni Islam
Kazakhs 15,193,000  Kazakhstan, Mongolia Bayan-Ölgii, China Ili Kazakh Autonomous Prefecture, Barköl Kazakh Autonomous County, Mori Kazakh Autonomous County,  Altai Sunni Islam
Uyghurs 11,900,000 China Xinjiang Uyghur Autonomous Region (PRC) Sunni Islam
Turkmens 8,000,000  Turkmenistan Sunni Islam
Volga Tatars 6,200,000  Tatarstan (Russian Federation) Sunni Islam, Orthodox Christianity
Kyrgyz 6,000,000  Kyrgyzstan, China Kizilsu Kyrgyz Autonomous Prefecture Sunni Islam
Bashkirs 1,700,000  Bashkortostan (Russian Federation) Sunni Islam
Chuvashes 1,500,000  Chuvashia (Russian Federation) Orthodox Christianity, Vattisen Yaly
Khorasani Turks 1,000,000 N/A Shia Islam
Qashqai 949,000 Shia Islam
Karakalpaks 796,000  Karakalpakstan (Uzbekistan) Sunni Islam
Kumyks 520,000  Dagestan (Russian Federation) Sunni Islam
Crimean Tatars <500,000

 Crimea (disputed by Ukraine and Russia)

Sunni Islam
Yakuts (Sakha) 482,000 Yakutia Sakha Republic or Yakutia (Russian Federation) Orthodox Christianity, Tengrism
Karachays 346,000  Karachay-Cherkessia (Russian Federation) Sunni Islam
Tuvans 273,000  Tuva (Russian Federation) Tibetan Buddhism, Tengrism
Gagauz 126,000 Gagauzia Gagauzia (Moldova) Orthodox Christianity
Balkars 112,000  Kabardino-Balkaria (Russian Federation) Sunni Islam
Nogais 110,000  Dagestan and  Karachay-Cherkessia (Russian Federation) Sunni Islam
Salar 104,000 China Xunhua Salar Autonomous County, Jishishan Bonan, Dongxiang and Salar Autonomous County Sunni Islam, Tibetan Buddhism
Khakas 75,000  Khakassia (Russian Federation) Orthodox Christianity, Tengrism
Altaians 74,000  Altai (Russian Federation) Burkhanism, Tengrism, Orthodox Christianity
Äynu >60,000 N/A Alevism
Khalaj 42,000 Shia Islam
Yugurs 13,000

China Sunan Yugur Autonomous County

Tibetan Buddhism, Tengrism
Dolgans 13,000

Taymyrsky Dolgano-Nenetsky District (Russian Federation)

Tengrism, Orthodox Christianity
Khotons 10,000 N/A Sunni Islam
Nağaybäk 8,000 Orthodox Christianity
Shors 8,000 Orthodox Christianity, Tengrism
Siberian Tatars 6,000 Sunni Islam
Telengits 3,700 Orthodox Christianity, Burkhanism, shamanism
Soyots 3,600 Tibetan Buddhism, Tengrism
Kumandins 2,900 Orthodox Christianity, Tengrism
Teleuts 2,700 Orthodox Christianity, Tengrism
Crimean Karaites 2,000 Karaite Judaism
Tubalar 1,900 Orthodox Christianity, shamanism
Fuyu Kyrgyz 1,400 Sunni Islam
Chelkans 1,100 Orthodox Christianity, Burkhanism, shamanism
Krymchaks 1,000 Orthodox Judaism
Tofalars 800 Tengrism, Orthodox Christianity
Chulyms 355 Orthodox Christianity
Dukha 282 Tengrism
Ili Turks 177 Sunni Islam
Historical Turkic groups

Possible Proto-Turkic ancestry, at least partial, has been posited for Xiongnu, Huns and Pannonian Avars, as well as Tuoba and Rouran, who were of Proto-Mongolic Donghu ancestry. as well as Tatars, Rourans' supposed descendants.

Remarks

  1. Figure combines population of Turkmen and Uzbeks only. Population estimates of Turkmenistan's minority groups often widely vary. Some sources have cast doubt on the reliability of official government data for minority population figures.
  2. The Xueyantuo were first known as Xinli 薪犁, later Xue 薛 in the 7th century; the Yenisei Kyrgyz were first known as Gekun (鬲昆) or Jiankun (堅昆), later known as Jiegu (結骨), Hegu (紇骨), Hegusi (紇扢斯), Hejiasi (紇戛斯), Hugu (護骨), Qigu (契骨), Juwu (居勿), and Xiajiasi (黠戛斯), all being transcriptions of Kyrgyz.
  3. Book of Wei vol. 102. quote: "悅般國 其風俗言語與高車同" translation: "Yueban nation Their customs and language are the same as the Gaoche"; Gaoche (高車; lit. "High-Carts") was another name of the Turkic-speaking Tiele
  4. Merkits were always counted as a part of the Mongols within the Mongol Empire, however, some scholars proposed additional Turkic ancestry for Merkits; Christopher P. Atwood – Encyclopedia of Mongolia and the Mongol Empire ISBN 978-0-8160-4671-3, Facts on File, Inc. 2004.
  5. Refers to forest peoples of the North, including the Turkic-speaking Tuvans and Yakuts, and also Mongolic-speaking Altai Uriankhai. The ethnonym Uriankhai is etymologically Mongolic, compare Khalkha uria(n) "war motto" and khai, alternation of khan. Uriankhai people are possibly linked to the Wuluohun tribe of the Shiwei people, who were predominantly Mongolic-speaking.
  6. Even though Chinese historians routinely ascribed Xiongnu origin to various nomadic peoples, such ascriptions do not necessarily indicate the subjects' exact origins; for examples, Xiongnu ancestry was ascribed to Turkic-speaking Göktürks and Tiele as well as Para-Mongolic-speaking Kumo Xi and Khitan.

Language

Main articles: Turkic languages and Proto-Turkic language Further information: List of alphabets used by Turkic languages

Distribution

Descriptive map of Turkic peoples.

The Turkic languages constitute a language family of some 30 languages, spoken across a vast area from Eastern Europe and the Mediterranean, to Siberia and Manchuria and through to the Middle East. Some 170 million people have a Turkic language as their native language; an additional 20 million people speak a Turkic language as a second language. The Turkic language with the greatest number of speakers is Turkish proper, or Anatolian Turkish, the speakers of which account for about 40% of all Turkic speakers. More than one third of these are ethnic Turks of Turkey, dwelling predominantly in Turkey proper and formerly Ottoman-dominated areas of Southern and Eastern Europe and West Asia; as well as in Western Europe, Australia and the Americas as a result of immigration. The remainder of the Turkic people are concentrated in Central Asia, Russia, the Caucasus, China, and northern Iraq.

The Turkic language family was traditionally considered to be part of the proposed Altaic language family. Howeover since the 1950s, a majority of linguists have rejected the proposal, after supposed cognates were found not to be valid, hypothesized sound shifts were not found, and Turkic and Mongolic languages were found to be converging rather than diverging over the centuries. Opponents of the theory proposed that the similarities are due to mutual linguistic influences between the groups concerned.

Alphabet

A page from "Codex Kumanicus". The Codex was designed in order to help Catholic missionaries communicate with the Kumans.

The Turkic alphabets are sets of related alphabets with letters (formerly known as runes), used for writing mostly Turkic languages. Inscriptions in Turkic alphabets were found in Mongolia. Most of the preserved inscriptions were dated to between 8th and 10th centuries CE.

The earliest positively dated and read Turkic inscriptions date from the 8th century, and the alphabets were generally replaced by the Old Uyghur alphabet in the East and Central Asia, Arabic script in the Middle and Western Asia, Cyrillic in Eastern Europe and in the Balkans, and Latin alphabet in Central Europe. The latest recorded use of Turkic alphabet was recorded in Central Europe's Hungary in 1699 CE.

The Turkic runiform scripts, unlike other typologically close scripts of the world, do not have a uniform palaeography as do, for example, the Gothic runiform scripts, noted for their exceptional uniformity of language and paleography. The Turkic alphabets are divided into four groups, the best known of which is the Orkhon version of the Enisei group. The Orkhon script is the alphabet used by the Göktürks from the 8th century to record the Old Turkic language. It was later used by the Uyghur Empire; a Yenisei variant is known from 9th-century Kyrgyz inscriptions, and it has likely cousins in the Talas Valley of Turkestan and the Old Hungarian script of the 10th century. Irk Bitig is the only known complete manuscript text written in the Old Turkic script.

History

Main article: Turkic history See also: Timeline, Turkic expansion, Confederations, Nomadic empire, Genetic history, and Liao civilization
History of the Turkic peoples pre–14th century
Court of Seljuk ruler Tughril III, circa 1200 CE.
Court of Seljuk ruler Tughril III, circa 1200 CE.
Turkic peoples
Onogurs
Oghuz Turks
Saragurs
Utigurs
Bulgars
Sabir
Kutrigurs
Karluks
Kimek
Kipchaks
Cherniye Klobuki
Uyghurs
Tatars
Kumyks
Yakuts
Dolgans
Krymchaks
Crimean Karaites
Turkic Languages
Turkish
Azerbaijani
Uzbek
Kazakh
Uyghur
Turkmen
Tatar
Kyrgyz
Bashkir
Chuvash
Qasgqai
Karakalpak
Sakha
Kumyk
Karachay-Balkar
Tuvan
Gagauz
Karaim
Krymchak
Turkic Mythology
Belief system: Tengrism and Shamanism
Chief gods and goddesses: Kayra and Ülgen
Epics and heroes: Ergenekon and Asena
Major concepts: Sheka and Grey wolf
Pre-14th century
Yenisei Kyrgyz People 202 BCE–13th CE
Dingling 71 BC–?? AD
Göktürks

(Tokhara Yabghus, Turk Shahis)

Sabiri People
Khazar Khaganate 618–1048
Xueyantuo 628–646
Kangar Union 659–750
Turk Shahi 665-850
Türgesh Khaganate 699–766
Kimek–Kipchak Confederation 743–1035
Uyghur Khaganate 744–840
Oghuz Yabgu State 750–1055
Karluk Yabgu State 756–940
Kara-Khanid Khanate 840–1212
Ganzhou Uyghur Kingdom 848–1036
Qocho 856–1335
Pecheneg Khanates 860–1091
Ghaznavid Empire 963–1186
Seljuk Empire 1037–1194
Cuman–Kipchak Confederation 1067–1239
Khwarazmian Empire 1077–1231
Kerait Khanate 11th century–13th century
Atabegs of Azerbaijan 1136–1225
Delhi Sultanate 1206–1526
Qarlughid Kingdom 1224–1266
Golden Horde 1242–1502
Mamluk Sultanate (Cairo) 1250–1517
Ottoman State 1299–1922

Origins

The origins of the Turkic peoples has been a topic of much discussion. Peter Benjamin Golden proposes two locations for the Proto-Turkic Urheimat: the southern Altai-Sayan region, and in Southern Siberia, from Lake Baikal to eastern Mongolia. Other studies suggested an early presence of Turkic peoples in Mongolia, or Tuva.

A possible genealogical link of the Turkic languages to Mongolic and Tungusic languages, specifically a hypothetical homeland in Manchuria, such as proposed in the Transeurasian hypothesis, by Martine Robbeets, has received support but also criticism, with opponents attributing similarities to long-term contact. The proto-Turkic-speakers may be linked to Neolithic East Asian agricultural societies in Northeastern China, which is to be associated with the Xinglongwa culture and the succeeding Hongshan culture, based on varying degrees of specific East Asian genetic substratum among modern Turkic speakers. According to historians, "the Proto-Turkic subsistence strategy included an agricultural component, a tradition that ultimately went back to the origin of millet agriculture in Northeast China". This view is however questioned by other geneticists, who found no evidence for a shared "Neolithic Hongshan ancestry", but in contrary primary Ancient Northeast Asian (ANA) Neolithic ancestry from the Amur region, supporting an origin from Northeast Asia rather than Manchuria.

Ancestral composition of modern-day Turkic-speaking populations, using three components: blue, Ancient Northeast Asian (Northern Mongolia and exemplified by Empress Ashina); green, West Eurasian‐related ancestry; and yellow, associated with neolithic millet farmers from Yellow River in China.According to Uchiyama et al. 2020 the "ultimate Proto-Turkic homeland may have been located in a more compact area, most likely in Eastern Mongolia, that is, close to the ultimate Proto-Mongolic homeland in Southern Manchuria and the ultimate Proto-Tungusic homeland in the present-day borderlands of China, Russia and North Korea. This hypothesis would explain the tight connections of Proto-Turkic with Proto-Mongolic and Proto-Tungusic, regardless of whether one interprets the numerous similarities between the three Altaic families as partly inherited or obtained owing to long-lasting contact."

Around 2,200 BC, the (agricultural) ancestors of the Turkic peoples probably migrated westwards into Mongolia, where they adopted a pastoral lifestyle, in part borrowed from Iranian peoples. Given nomadic peoples such as Xiongnu, Rouran and Xianbei share underlying genetic ancestry "that falls into or close to the northeast Asian gene pool", the proto-Turkic language likely originated in northeastern Asia.

Genetic data found that almost all modern Turkic peoples retained at least some shared ancestry associated with populations in "South Siberia and Mongolia" (SSM), supporting this region as the "Inner Asian Homeland (IAH) of the pioneer carriers of Turkic languages" which subsequently expanded into Central Asia. The main Turkic expansion took place during the 5th–16th centuries, partially overlapping with the Mongol Empire period. Based on single-path IBD tracts, the common Turkic ancestral population lived prior to these migration events, and likely stem from a similar source population as Mongolic peoples further East. Historical data suggests that the Mongol Empire period acted as secondary force of "turkification", as the Mongol conquest "did not involve massive re-settlements of Mongols over the conquered territories. Instead, the Mongol war machine was progressively augmented by various Turkic tribes as they expanded, and in this way Turkic peoples eventually reinforced their expansion over the Eurasian steppe and beyond."

Population structure of Turkic-speaking populations in the context of their geographic neighbors across Eurasia. Turkic-speaking populations are shown in red. The upper barplot shows only Turkic-speaking populations.

A 2018 autosomal single-nucleotide polymorphism study suggested that the Eurasian Steppe slowly transitioned from Indo European and Iranian-speaking groups with largely western Eurasian ancestry to increasing East Asian ancestry with Turkic and Mongolian groups in the past 4000 years, including extensive Turkic migrations out of Mongolia and slow assimilation of local populations. A 2022 report suggested that Turkic and Mongolic populations in Central Asia formed via admixture events during the Iron Age between "local Indo-Iranian and a South-Siberian or Mongolian group with a high East-Asian ancestry (around 60%)". Modern day Turkmens form an outlier among Central Asian Turkic-speakers with a lower frequency of the Baikal component (c. 22%) and a lack of the Han-like component, being closer to other Indo-Iranian groups. A subsequent study in 2022 also found that the spread of Turkic-speaking populations into Central Asia happened after the spread of Indo-European speakers into the area. Another 2022 study found that all Altaic‐speaking (Turkic, Tungusic, and Mongolic) populations "were a mixture of dominant Siberian Neolithic ancestry and non-negligible YRB ancestry", suggesting their origins were somewhere in Northeast Asia, most likely the Amur river basin. Except Eastern and Southern Mongolic-speakers, all "possessed a high proportion of West Eurasian-related ancestry, in accordance with the linguistically documented language borrowing in Turkic languages".

A 2023 study analyzed the DNA of Empress Ashina (568–578 AD), a Royal Göktürk, whose remains were recovered from a mausoleum in Xianyang, China. The authors determined that Empress Ashina belonged to the North-East Asian mtDNA haplogroup F1d, and that approximately 96-98% of her autosomal ancestry was of Ancient Northeast Asian origin, while roughly 2-4% was of West Eurasian origin, indicating ancient admixture. This study weakened the "western Eurasian origin and multiple origin hypotheses". However, they also noted that "Central Steppe and early Medieval Türk exhibited a high but variable degree of West Eurasian ancestry, indicating there was a genetic substructure of the Türkic empire." The early medieval Türk samples were modelled as having 37.8% West Eurasian ancestry and 62.2% Ancient Northeast Asian ancestry and historic Central Steppe Türk samples were also an admixture of West Eurasian and Ancient Northeast Asian ancestry, while historic Karakhanid, Kipchak and the Turkic Karluk samples had 50.6%-61.1% West Eurasian ancestry and 38.9%–49.4% Iron Age Yellow River farmer ancestry. A 2020 study also found "high genetic heterogeneity and diversity during the Türkic and Uyghur periods" in the early medieval period in Eastern Eurasian Steppe.

Early historical attestation

The earliest separate Turkic peoples, such as the Gekun (鬲昆) and Xinli (薪犁), appeared on the peripheries of the late Xiongnu confederation about 200 BCE (contemporaneous with the Chinese Han dynasty) and later among the Turkic-speaking Tiele as Hegu (紇骨) and Xue (薛).

The Tiele (also known as Gaoche 高車, lit. "High Carts"), may be related to the Xiongnu and the Dingling. According to the Book of Wei, the Tiele people were the remnants of the Chidi (赤狄), the red Di people competing with the Jin in the Spring and Autumn period. Historically they were established after the 6th century BCE.

The Tiele were first mentioned in Chinese literature from the 6th to 8th centuries. Some scholars (Haneda, Onogawa, Geng, etc.) proposed that Tiele, Dili, Dingling, Chile, Tele, & Tujue all transliterated underlying Türk; however, Golden proposed that Dili, Dingling, Chile, Tele, and Tiele transliterated Tegrek while Tujue transliterated Türküt, plural of Türk. The appellation Türük (Old Turkic: 𐱅𐰇𐰼𐰰) ~ Türk (OT: 𐱅𐰇𐰼𐰚) (whence Middle Chinese 突厥 *dwət-kuɑt > *tɦut-kyat > standard Chinese: Tūjué) was initially reserved exclusively for the Göktürks by Chinese, Tibetans, and even the Turkic-speaking Uyghurs. In contrast, medieval Muslim writers, including Turkic speakers like Ottoman historian Mustafa Âlî and explorer Evliya Çelebi as well as Timurid scientist Ulugh Beg, often viewed Inner Asian tribes, "as forming a single entity regardless of their linguistic affiliation" commonly used Turk as a generic name for Inner Asians (whether Turkic- or Mongolic-speaking). Only in modern era do modern historians use Turks to refer to all peoples speaking Turkic languages, differentiated from non-Turkic speakers.

According to some researchers (Duan, Xue, Tang, Lung, Onogawa, etc.) the later Ashina tribe descended from the Tiele confederation. The Tiele however were probably one of many early Turkic groups, ancestral to later Turkic populations. However, according to Lee & Kuang (2017), Chinese histories do not describe the Ashina and the Göktürks as descending from the Dingling or the Tiele confederation.

Xiongnu (3rd c. BCE – 1st c. CE)

Main article: Xiongnu
Territory of the Xiongnu, which included Mongolia, Western Manchuria, Xinjiang, East Kazakhstan, East Kyrgyzstan, Inner Mongolia, and Gansu.

It has even been suggested that the Xiongnu themselves, who were mentioned in Han dynasty records, were Proto-Turkic speakers. The Turks may ultimately have been of Xiongnu descent. Although little is known for certain about the Xiongnu language(s), it seems likely that at least a considerable part of Xiongnu tribes spoke a Turkic language. Some scholars believe they were probably a confederation of various ethnic and linguistic groups. According to a study by Alexander Savelyev and Choongwon Jeong, published in 2020 in the journal Evolutionary Human Sciences by Cambridge University Press, "the predominant part of the Xiongnu population is likely to have spoken Turkic". However, genetic studies found a mixture of western and eastern Eurasian ancestries, suggesting a large genetic diversity within the Xiongnu. The Turkic-related component may be brought by eastern Eurasian genetic substratum.

Using the only extant possibly Xiongnu writings, the rock art of the Yinshan and Helan Mountains, some scholars argue that the older Xiongnu writings are precursors to the earliest known Turkic alphabet, the Orkhon script. Petroglyphs of this region dates from the 9th millennium BCE to the 19th century, and consists mainly of engraved signs (petroglyphs) and few painted images. Excavations done during 1924–1925 in Noin-Ula kurgans located in the Selenga River in the northern Mongolian hills north of Ulaanbaatar produced objects with over 20 carved characters, which were either identical or very similar to the runic letters of the Turkic Orkhon script discovered in the Orkhon Valley.

Steppe expansions

Göktürks – Turkic Khaganate (5th–8th c.)

Turkic peoples is located in Continental AsiaKyrgyzsCHAM-
PA
576CHENLAFIRST TURKIC KHAGANATESASANIAN
EMPIRE
ALCHON
HUNS
CHALU-
KYAS
LATER
GUPTAS
NORTH.
ZHOU
NORTH.
QI
ZHANGZHUNGCHENBYZANTINE
EMPIRE
AVAR
KHAGANATE
TUYUHUNKhitansPaleo-SiberiansTungusGOGU-
RYEO
TOCHA-
RIANS
class=notpageimage| The First Turkic Khaganate at its greatest extent, in 576, with neighbouring contemporary polities. Main articles: Göktürks and First Turkic Khaganate

The earliest certain mentioning of the politonym "Turk" was in the Chinese Book of Zhou. In the 540s AD, this text mentions that the Turks came to China's border seeking silk goods and a trade relationship. A Sogdian diplomat represented China in a series of embassies between the Western Wei dynasty and the Turks in the years 545 and 546.

According to the Book of Sui and the Tongdian, they were "mixed barbarians" (雜胡; záhú) who migrated from Pingliang (now in modern Gansu province, China) to the Rourans seeking inclusion in their confederacy and protection from the prevailing dynasty. Alternatively, according to the Book of Zhou, History of the Northern Dynasties, and New Book of Tang, the Ashina clan was a component of the Xiongnu confederation. Göktürks were also posited as having originated from an obscure Suo state (索國), north of the Xiongnu. The Ashina tribe were famed metalsmiths and were granted land south of the Altai Mountains (金山 Jinshan), which looked like a helmet, from which they were said to have gotten their name 突厥 (Tūjué), the first recorded use of "Turk" as a political name. In the 6th-century, Ashina's power had increased such that they conquered the Tiele on their Rouran overlords' behalf and even overthrew Rourans and established the First Turkic Khaganate.

A Turkic warrior from the Göktürk period. The horse's tail is knotted in Turkic style. His hair is long, braided and his big-collared caftan and boots are Turkic clothing features.

The original Old Turkic name Kök Türk derives from kök ~ kö:k, "sky, sky-coloured, blue, blue-grey". Unlike its Xiongnu predecessor, the Göktürk Khaganate had its temporary Khagans from the Ashina clan, who were subordinate to a sovereign authority controlled by a council of tribal chiefs. The Khaganate retained elements of its original animistic- shamanistic religion, that later evolved into Tengriism, although it received missionaries of Buddhist monks and practiced a syncretic religion. The Göktürks were the first Turkic people to write Old Turkic in a runic script, the Orkhon script. The Khaganate was also the first state known as "Turk". It eventually collapsed due to a series of dynastic conflicts, but many states and peoples later used the name "Turk".

The Göktürks (First Turkic Kaganate) quickly spread west to the Caspian Sea. Between 581 and 603 the Western Turkic Khaganate in Kazakhstan separated from the Eastern Turkic Khaganate in Mongolia and Manchuria during a civil war. The Han-Chinese successfully overthrew the Eastern Turks in 630 and created a military Protectorate until 682. After that time the Second Turkic Khaganate ruled large parts of the former Göktürk area. After several wars between Turks, Chinese and Tibetans, the weakened Second Turkic Khaganate was replaced by the Uyghur Khaganate in the year 744.

Bulgars, Golden Horde and the Siberian Khanate

The migration of the Bulgars after the fall of Old Great Bulgaria in the 7th century

The Bulgars established themselves in between the Caspian and Black Seas in the 5th and 6th centuries, followed by their conquerors, the Khazars who converted to Judaism in the 8th or 9th century. After them came the Pechenegs who created a large confederacy, which was subsequently taken over by the Cumans and the Kipchaks. One group of Bulgars settled in the Volga region and mixed with local Volga Finns to become the Volga Bulgars in what is today Tatarstan. These Bulgars were conquered by the Mongols following their westward sweep under Ogedei Khan in the 13th century. Other Bulgars settled in Southeastern Europe in the 7th and 8th centuries, and mixed with the Slavic population, adopting what eventually became the Slavic Bulgarian language. Everywhere, Turkic groups mixed with the local populations to varying degrees.

Golden Horde

The Volga Bulgaria became an Islamic state in 922 and influenced the region as it controlled many trade routes. In the 13th century, Mongols invaded Europe and established the Golden Horde in Eastern Europe, western and northern Central Asia, and even western Siberia. The Cuman-Kipchak Confederation and Islamic Volga Bulgaria were absorbed by the Golden Horde in the 13th century; in the 14th century, Islam became the official religion under Uzbeg Khan where the general population (Turks) as well as the aristocracy (Mongols) came to speak the Kipchak language and were collectively known as "Tatars" by Russians and Westerners. This country was also known as the Kipchak Khanate and covered most of what is today Ukraine, as well as the entirety of modern-day southern and eastern Russia (the European section). The Golden Horde disintegrated into several khanates and hordes in the 15th and 16th century including the Crimean Khanate, Khanate of Kazan, and Kazakh Khanate (among others), which were one by one conquered and annexed by the Russian Empire in the 16th through 19th centuries.

In Siberia, the Siberian Khanate was established in the 1490s by fleeing Tatar aristocrats of the disintegrating Golden Horde who established Islam as the official religion in western Siberia over the partly Islamized native Siberian Tatars and indigenous Uralic peoples. It was the northernmost Islamic state in recorded history and it survived up until 1598 when it was conquered by Russia.

Uyghur Khaganate (8th–9th c.)

Uyghur Khaganate
Uyghur painting from the Bezeklik cavels from the 9th century
Uyghur painting from the Bezeklik murals
Main article: Uyghur Khaganate
Uyghur royals in Chinese-style dresses

The Uyghur Khaganate had established itself by the year 744 AD. Through trade relations established with China, its capital city of Ordu Baliq in central Mongolia's Orkhon Valley became a wealthy center of commerce, and a significant portion of the Uyghur population abandoned their nomadic lifestyle for a sedentary one. The Uyghur Khaganate produced extensive literature, and a relatively high number of its inhabitants were literate.

The official state religion of the early Uyghur Khaganate was Manichaeism, which was introduced through the conversion of Bögü Qaghan by the Sogdians after the An Lushan rebellion. The Uyghur Khaganate was tolerant of religious diversity and practiced variety of religions including Buddhism, Christianity, shamanism and Manichaeism.

During the same time period, the Shatuo Turks emerged as power factor in Northern and Central China and were recognized by the Tang Empire as allied power.

In 808, 30,000 Shatuo under Zhuye Jinzhong defected from the Tibetans to Tang China and the Tibetans punished them by killing Zhuye Jinzhong as they were chasing them. The Uyghurs also fought against an alliance of Shatuo and Tibetans at Beshbalik.

The Shatuo Turks under Zhuye Chixin (Li Guochang) served the Tang dynasty in fighting against their fellow Turkic people in the Uyghur Khaganate. In 839, when the Uyghur khaganate (Huigu) general Jueluowu (掘羅勿) rose against the rule of then-reigning Zhangxin Khan, he elicited the help from Zhuye Chixin by giving Zhuye 300 horses, and together, they defeated Zhangxin Khan, who then committed suicide, precipitating the subsequent collapse of the Uyghur Khaganate. In the next few years, when Uyghur Khaganate remnants tried to raid Tang borders, the Shatuo participated extensively in counterattacking the Uyghur Khaganate with other tribes loyal to Tang. In 843, Zhuye Chixin, under the command of the Han Chinese officer Shi Xiong with Tuyuhun, Tangut and Han Chinese troops, participated in a raid against the Uyghur khaganate that led to the slaughter of Uyghur forces at Shahu mountain.

The Turkic Later Tang dynasty

The Shatuo Turks had founded several short-lived sinicized dynasties in northern China during the Five Dynasties and Ten Kingdoms period starting with Later Tang. The Shatuo chief Zhuye Chixin's family was adopted by the Tang dynasty and given the title prince of Jin and the Tang dynasty imperial surname of Li, which is why the Shatuo of Later Tang claimed to be restoring the Tang dynasty and not founding a new one. The official language of these dynasties was Chinese and they used Chinese titles and names. Some Shaotuo Turk emperors (of the Later Jin, Later Han and Northern Han) also claimed patrilineal Han Chinese ancestry.

After the fall of the Tang dynasty in 907, the Shatuo Turks replaced them and created the Later Tang dynasty in 923. The Shatuo Turks ruled over a large part of northern China, including Beijing. They adopted Chinese names and united Turkic and Chinese traditions. Later Tang fell in 937 but the Shatuo rose to become a powerful faction of northern China. They created two other dynasties, including the Later Jin and Later Han and Northern Han (Later Han and Northern Han were ruled by the same family, with the latter being a rump state of the former). The Shatuo Liu Zhiyuan was a Buddhist and he worshipped the Mengshan Giant Buddha in 945. The Shatuo dynasties were replaced by the Han Chinese Song dynasty. The Shatuo became the Ongud Turks living in Inner Mongolia after the Song dynasty conquered the last Shatuo dynasty of Northern Han. The Ongud assimilated to the Mongols.

The Yenisei Kyrgyz allied with China to destroy the Uyghur Khaganate in the year 840 AD. From the Yenisei River, the Kyrgyz pushed south and eastward in to Xinjiang and the Orkhon Valley in central Mongolia, leaving much of the Uyghur civilization in ruins. Much of the Uyghur population relocated to the southwest of Mongolia, establishing the Ganzhou Uyghur Kingdom in Gansu where their descendants are the modern day Yugurs and Qocho Kingdom in Turpan, Xinjiang.

Central Asia

Kangar union (659–750)

Kangar Union after the fall of Western Turkic Khaganate, 659–750

The Kangar Union (Qanghar Odaghu) was a Turkic state in the former territory of the Western Turkic Khaganate (the entire present-day state of Kazakhstan, without Zhetysu). The capital of the Kangar union was located in the Ulytau mountains. Among the Pechenegs, the Kangar formed the elite of the Pecheneg tribes. After being defeated by the Kipchaks, Oghuz Turks, and the Khazars, they migrated west and defeated Magyars, and after forming an alliance with the Bulgars, they defeated the Byzantine Army. The Pecheneg state was established by the 11th century and at its peak carried a population of over 2.5 million, composed of many different ethnic groups.

The elite of the Kangar tribes are believed to have had an Iranian origin, and they likely spoke an Iranian language, while most of the Pecheneg population spoke a Turkic language, with a significant percentage speaking Hunno-Bulgar dialects.

The Yatuks, a tribe within the Kangar state who could not accompany the Kangars as they migrated West, remained in the old lands, where they are known as the Kangly people, who are now part of the Uzbek, Kazakh, and Karakalpak tribes.

Oghuz Yabgu State (766–1055)

Oghuz Yabgu State (c.750 CE)

The Oguz Yabgu State (Oguz il, meaning "Oguz Land", "Oguz Country")(750–1055) was a Turkic state, founded by Oghuz Turks in 766, located geographically in an area between the coasts of the Caspian and Aral Seas. Oguz tribes occupied a vast territory in Kazakhstan along the Irgiz, Yaik, Emba, and Uil rivers, the Aral Sea area, the Syr Darya valley, the foothills of the Karatau Mountains in Tien-Shan, and the Chui River valley (see map). The Oguz political association developed in the 9th and 10th centuries in the Syr Darya basin.

Salar Oghuz migration

The Salars are descended from Turkmen who migrated from Central Asia and settled in a Tibetan area of Qinghai under Ming Chinese rule. The Salar ethnicity formed and underwent ethnogenesis from a process of male Turkmen migrants from Central Asia marrying Amdo Tibetan women during the early Ming dynasty.

Iranian, Indian, Arabic, and Anatolian expansion

Main articles: Ghaznavids, Seljuk Empire, Delhi Sultanate, Mamluk Sultanate, Timurid Empire, Bahri dynasty, Deccan sultanates, Safavid Iran, Ottoman Empire, Mughal Empire, and Afsharid dynasty

Turkic peoples and related groups migrated west from present-day Northeastern China, Mongolia, Siberia and the Turkestan-region towards the Iranian plateau, South Asia, and Anatolia (modern Turkey) in many waves. The date of the initial expansion remains unknown.

Persia

Ghaznavid dynasty (977–1186)
Ghaznavid Empire at its greatest extent in 1030 CE
Main articles: Ghaznavids and Uzbeks

The Ghaznavid dynasty (Persian: غزنویان ġaznaviyān) was a Persianate Muslim dynasty of Turkic mamluk origin, at their greatest extent ruling large parts of Iran, Afghanistan, much of Transoxiana and the northwest Indian subcontinent (part of Pakistan) from 977 to 1186. The dynasty was founded by Sabuktigin upon his succession to rule of the region of Ghazna after the death of his father-in-law, Alp Tigin, who was a breakaway ex-general of the Samanid Empire from Balkh, north of the Hindu Kush in Greater Khorasan.

Although the dynasty was of Central Asian Turkic origin, it was thoroughly Persianised in terms of language, culture, literature and habits and hence is regarded by some as a "Persian dynasty".

Seljuk Empire (1037–1194)
Main article: Seljuk Empire
A map showing the Seljuk Empire at its height, upon the death of Malik Shah I in 1092.

The Seljuk Empire (Persian: آل سلجوق, romanizedĀl-e Saljuq, lit.'House of Saljuq') or the Great Seljuq Empire was a high medieval Turko-Persian Sunni Muslim empire, originating from the Qiniq branch of Oghuz Turks. At its greatest extent, the Seljuk Empire controlled a vast area stretching from western Anatolia and the Levant to the Hindu Kush in the east, and from Central Asia to the Persian Gulf in the south.

The Seljuk empire was founded by Tughril Beg (1016–1063) and his brother Chaghri Beg (989–1060) in 1037. From their homelands near the Aral Sea, the Seljuks advanced first into Khorasan and then into mainland Persia, before eventually conquering eastern Anatolia. Here the Seljuks won the battle of Manzikert in 1071 and conquered most of Anatolia from the Byzantine Empire, which became one of the reasons for the First Crusade (1095–1099). From c. 1150–1250, the Seljuk empire declined, and was invaded by the Mongols around 1260. The Mongols divided Anatolia into emirates. Eventually one of these, the Ottoman, would conquer the rest.

Timurid Empire (1370–1507)
Map of the Timurid Empire at its greatest extent under Timur.
Main article: Timurid Empire

The Timurid Empire was a Turko-Mongol empire founded in the late 14th century through military conquests led by Timurlane. The establishment of a cosmopolitan empire was followed by the Timurid Renaissance, a period of local enrichment in mathematics, astronomy, architecture, as well as newfound economic growth. The cultural progress of the Timurid period ended as soon as the empire collapsed in the early 16th century, leaving many intellecuals and artists to turn elsewhere in search of employment.

Central Asian khanates (1501–1920)
Main articles: Khanate of Bukhara, Khanate of Khiva, Khanate of Kokand, and Emirate of Bukhara
Central Asia in 1636

The Bukhara Khanate was an Uzbek state that existed from 1501 to 1785. The khanate was ruled by three dynasties of the Shaybanids, Janids and the Uzbek dynasty of Mangits. In 1785, Shahmurad, formalized the family's dynastic rule (Manghit dynasty), and the khanate became the Emirate of Bukhara (1785–1920). In 1710, the Kokand Khanate (1710–1876) separated from the Bukhara Khanate. In 1511–1920, Khwarazm (Khiva Khanate) was ruled by the Arabshahid dynasty and the Uzbek dynasty of Kungrats.

Afsharid dynasty (1736–1796)

The Afsharid dynasty was named after the Turkic Afshar tribe to which they belonged. The Afshars had migrated from Turkestan to Azerbaijan in the 13th century. The dynasty was founded in 1736 by the military commander Nader Shah who deposed the last member of the Safavid dynasty and proclaimed himself King of Iran. Nader belonged to the Qereqlu branch of the Afshars. During Nader's reign, Iran reached its greatest extent since the Sassanid Empire.

Qajar dynasty (1789–1925)

The Qajar dynasty was created by the Turkic Qajar tribe, ruling over Iran from 1789 to 1925. The Qajar family took full control of Iran in 1794, deposing Lotf 'Ali Khan, the last Shah of the Zand dynasty, and re-asserted Iranian sovereignty over large parts of the Caucasus. In 1796, Mohammad Khan Qajar seized Mashhad with ease, putting an end to the Afsharid dynasty, and Mohammad Khan was formally crowned as Shah after his punitive campaign against Iran's Georgian subjects. In the Caucasus, the Qajar dynasty permanently lost many of Iran's integral areas to the Russians over the course of the 19th century, comprising modern-day Georgia, Dagestan, Azerbaijan and Armenia. The dynasty was founded by Agha Mohammad Khan Qajar and continued until Ahmad Shah Qajar.

South Asia

Mughal Emperor Jahangir presents Prince Khurram with a turban ornament. Babur, founder of the Mughal Empire and Mughal emperor Humayun.

The Delhi Sultanate is a term used to cover five short-lived, Delhi-based kingdoms, two of which were of Turkic origins: the Mamluk dynasty (1206–1290) and the Tughlaq dynasty (1320–1414). Southern India saw rise of the Qutb Shahi dynasty, one of the Deccan sultanates. The Mughal Empire was a Turko-Mongol empire that, at its greatest territorial extent, ruled most of South Asia, including Afghanistan, Pakistan, India, Bangladesh and parts of Uzbekistan from the early 16th to the early 18th centuries. The Mughal dynasty was founded by a Turko-Mongol prince named Babur (reigned 1526–1530), who was descended from Timur (Tamerlane) on his father's side and from Chagatai, second son of the Mongol ruler Genghis Khan, on his mother's side. A further distinction was the attempt of the Mughals to integrate Hindus and Muslims into a united Indian state.

Arab world

Silver dirham of AH 329 (940/941 CE), with the names of Caliph al-Muttaqi and Amir al-umara Bajkam (de facto ruler of the country)

The Arab Muslim Umayyads and Abbasids fought against the pagan Turks in the Türgesh Khaganate in the Muslim conquest of Transoxiana. Turkic soldiers in the army of the Abbasid caliphs emerged as the de facto rulers of most of the Muslim Middle East (apart from Syria and Egypt), particularly after the 10th century. Examples of regional de facto independent states include the short lived Tulunids and Ikhshidids in Egypt. The Oghuz and other tribes captured and dominated various countries under the leadership of the Seljuk dynasty and eventually captured the territories of the Abbasid dynasty and the Byzantine Empire.

Anatolia – Ottomans

Ottoman empire in 1683

After many battles, the western Oghuz Turks established their own state and later constructed the Ottoman Empire. The main migration of the Oghuz Turks occurred in medieval times, when they spread across most of Asia and into Europe and the Middle East. They also took part in the military encounters of the Crusades. In 1090–91, the Turkic Pechenegs reached the walls of Constantinople, where Emperor Alexius I with the aid of the Kipchaks annihilated their army.

As the Seljuk Empire declined following the Mongol invasion, the Ottoman Empire emerged as the new important Turkic state, that came to dominate not only the Middle East, but even southeastern Europe, parts of southwestern Russia, and northern Africa.

Islamization

Turkic peoples like the Karluks (mainly 8th century), Uyghurs, Kyrgyz, Turkmens, and Kipchaks later came into contact with Muslims, and most of them gradually adopted Islam. Some groups of Turkic people practice other religions, including their original animistic-shamanistic religion, Christianity, Burkhanism, Judaism (Khazars, Krymchaks, Crimean Karaites), Buddhism, and a small number of Zoroastrians.

Modern history

Map highlighting present-day Turkic countries
Independent Turkic states shown in red

The Ottoman Empire gradually grew weaker in the face of poor administration, repeated wars with Russia, Austria and Hungary, and the emergence of nationalist movements in the Balkans, and it finally gave way after World War I to the present-day Republic of Turkey. Ethnic nationalism also developed in Ottoman Empire during the 19th century, taking the form of Pan-Turkism or Turanism.

The Turkic peoples of Central Asia were not organized in nation-states during most of the 20th century, after the collapse of the Russian Empire living either in the Soviet Union or (after a short-lived First East Turkestan Republic) in the Chinese Republic. For much of the 20th century, Turkey was the only independent Turkic country.

In 1991, after the disintegration of the Soviet Union, five Turkic states gained their independence. These were Azerbaijan, Kazakhstan, Kyrgyzstan, Turkmenistan, and Uzbekistan. Other Turkic regions such as Tatarstan, Tuva, and Yakutia remained in the Russian Federation. Chinese Turkestan remained part of the People's Republic of China. Immediately after the independence of the Turkic states, Turkey began seeking diplomatic relations with them. Over time political meetings between the Turkic countries increased and led to the establishment of TÜRKSOY in 1993 and the Turkic Council in 2009, which later was renamed Organization of Turkic States in 2021.

Physiognomy

According to historians Joo-Yup Lee and Shuntu Kuang, Chinese official histories do not depict Turkic peoples as belonging to a single uniform entity called "Turks". However "Chinese histories also depict the Turkic-speaking peoples as typically possessing East/Inner Asian physiognomy, as well as occasionally having West Eurasian physiognomy." According to "fragmentary information on the Xiongnu language that can be found in the Chinese histories, the Xiongnu were Turkic", however historians have been unable to confirm whether or not they were Turkic. Sima Qian's description of their legendary origins suggest their physiognomy was "not too different from that of... Han (漢) Chinese population", but a subset of Xiongnu known as the Jie people were described having "deep-set eyes", "high nose bridges" and "heavy facial hair". The Jie may have been Yeniseian, although others maintaining an Iranian affiliation, and regardless of whether or not the Xiongnu were Turkic, they were a hybrid people. According to the Old Book of Tang, Ashina Simo "was not given a high military post by the Ashina rulers because of his Sogdian (huren 胡人) physiognomy." The Tang historian Yan Shigu described the Hu people of his day as "blue-eyed and red bearded" descendants of the Wusun, whereas "no comparable depiction of the Kök Türks or Tiele is found in the official Chinese histories."

An early Turk Shahi ruler named Sri Ranasrikari "The Lord who brings excellence through war" (Brahmi script). In this realistic portrait, he wears the Turkic double-lapel caftan. Late 7th to early 8th century CE.

Historian Peter Golden has reported that genetic testing of the proposed descendants of the Ashina tribe does seem to confirm a link to the Indo-Iranians, emphasizing that "the Turks as a whole 'were made up of heterogeneous and somatically dissimilar populations'". Historian Emel Esin and Professor Xue Zongzheng have argued that West Eurasian features were typical of the royal Ashina clan of the Eastern Turkic Khaganate and that their appearance shifted to an East Asian one due to intermarriage with foreign nobility. As a result, by the time of Kul Tigin (684 AD), members of the Ashina dynasty had East Asian features. A 2023 genetic study found that Empress Ashina (568–578 AD), a Royal Göktürk, had nearly entirely Ancient Northeast Asian origin, weakening the "western Eurasian origin and multiple origin hypotheses". Lee and Kuang believe it is likely "early and medieval Turkic peoples themselves did not form a homogeneous entity and that some of them, non-Turkic by origin, had become Turkicised at some point in history." They also suggest that many modern Turkic-speaking populations are not directly descended from early Turkic peoples. Lee and Kuang concluded that "both medieval Chinese histories and modern DNA studies point to the fact that the early and medieval Turkic peoples were made up of heterogeneous and somatically dissimilar populations."

Like Chinese historians, Medieval Muslim writers generally depicted the Turks as having an East Asian appearance. Unlike Chinese historians, Medieval Muslim writers used the term "Turk" broadly to refer to not only Turkic-speaking peoples but also various non-Turkic speaking peoples, such as the Hephthalites, Rus, Magyars, and Tibetans. In the 13th century, Juzjani referred to the people of Tibet and the mountains between Tibet and Bengal as "Turks" and "people with Turkish features." Medieval Arab and Persian descriptions of Turks state that they looked strange from their perspective and were extremely physically different from Arabs. Turks were described as "broad faced people with small eyes", having light-colored, often reddish hair, and with pink skin, as being "short, with small eyes, nostrils, and mouths" (Sharaf al-Zaman al-Marwazi), as being "full-faced with small eyes" (Al-Tabari), as possessing "a large head (sar-i buzurg), a broad face (rūy-i pahn), narrow eyes (chashmhā-i tang), and a flat nose (bīnī-i pakhch), and unpleasing lips and teeth (lab va dandān na nīkū)" (Keikavus). On Western Turkic coins "the faces of the governor and governess are clearly Mongoloid (a roundish face, narrow eyes), and the portrait have definite old Türk features (long hair, absence of headdress of the governor, a tricorn headdress of the governess)".

Ghaznavid portrait, Palace of Lashkari Bazar. Schlumberger noted that the turban, the small mouth and the strongly slanted eyes were characteristically Turkic.

In the Ghaznavids' residential palace of Lashkari Bazar, there survives a partially conserved portrait depicting a turbaned and haloed adolescent figure with full cheeks, slanted eyes, and a small, sinuous mouth. The Armenian historian Movses Kaghankatvatsi describes the Turks of the Western Turkic Khaganate as "broad-faced, without eyelashes, and with long flowing hair like women".

Al-Masudi writes that the Oghuz Turks in Yengi-kent near the mouth of the Syr Darya "are distinguished from other Turks by their valour, their slanted eyes, and the smallness of their stature." Later Muslim writers noted a change in the physiognomy of Oghuz Turks. According to Rashid al-Din Hamadani, "because of the climate their features gradually changed into those of Tajiks. Since they were not Tajiks, the Tajik peoples called them turkmān, i.e. Turk-like (Turk-mānand)." Ḥāfiẓ Tanīsh Mīr Muḥammad Bukhārī also related that the Oghuz' 'Turkic face did not remain as it was' after their migration into Transoxiana and Iran. Khiva khan Abu al-Ghazi Bahadur wrote in his Chagatai language treatise Shajara-i Tarākima (Genealogy of the Turkmens) that "their chin started to become narrow, their eyes started to become large, their faces started to become small, and their noses started to become big' after five or six generations". Ottoman historian Mustafa Âlî commented in Künhüʾl-aḫbār that Anatolian Turks and Ottoman elites are ethnically mixed: "Most of the inhabitants of Rûm are of confused ethnic origin. Among its notables there are few whose lineage does not go back to a convert to Islam."

Kevin Alan Brook states that like "most nomadic Turks, the Western Turkic Khazars were racially and ethnically mixed." Istakhri described Khazars as having black hair while Ibn Sa'id al-Maghribi described them as having blue eyes, light skin, and reddish hair. Istakhri mentions that there were "Black Khazars" and "White Khazars." Most scholars believe these were political designations: black being lower class while white being higher class. Constantin Zuckerman argues that these "had physical and racial differences and explained that they stemmed from the merger of the Khazars with the Barsils." Old East Slavic sources called the Khazars the "White Ugry" and the Magyars the "Black Ugry." Soviet excavated Khazar remains show Slavic-type, European-type, and a minority Mongoloid-type skulls.

The Yenisei Kyrgyz are mentioned in the New Book of Tang as having the same script and language as the Uyghurs but "The people are all tall and big and have red hair, white faces, and green eyes." The New Book of Tang also states that the neighboring Boma tribe resembled the Kyrgyz but their language was different, which may imply the Kyrgyz were originally a non-Turkic people, who were later Turkicized through inter-tribal marriages. According to Gardizi, the Kyrgyz were mixed with "Saqlabs" (Slavs), which explains the red hair and white skin among the Kyrgyz, while the New Book states that the Kyrgyz "intermixed with the Dingling." The Kyrgyz "regarded those with black eyes as descending from Ling," a Han dynasty general who defected to the Xiongnu.

In a Chinese legal statute from the early period of the Ming dynasty, the Kipchaks are described as having blond hair and blue eyes. It also states that they had a "vile" and "peculiar" appearance, and that some Chinese people would not want to marry them. Russian anthropologist Oshanin (1964: 24, 32) notes that "the 'Mongoloid' phenotype, characteristic of modern Kazakhs and Qirghiz, prevails among the skulls of the Qipchaq and Pecheneg nomads found in the kurgans in eastern Ukraine"; Lee & Kuang (2017) propose that Oshanin's discovery is explainable by assuming that the historical Kipchaks' modern descendants are Kazakhs of the Lesser Horde, whose men possess a high frequency of haplogroup C2's subclade C2b1b1 (59.7 to 78%). Lee and Kuang also suggest that the high frequency (63.9%) of the Y-DNA haplogroup R-M73 among Karakypshaks (a tribe within the Kipchaks) allows inference about the genetics of Karakypshaks' medieval ancestors, thus explaining why some medieval Kipchaks were described as possessing "blue eyes and red hair.

Byzantine historians of the 11th-12th centuries provided description of Turkmens as very different from the Greeks. Bertrandon de la Broquière, a French traveller to the Ottoman Empire, met with sultan Murad II in Adrianople, and described him in the following terms: "In the first place, as I have seen him frequently, I shall say that he is a little, short, thick man, with the physiognomy of a Tartar. He has a broad and brown face, high cheek bones, a round beard, a great and crooked nose, with little eyes".

Remarks

  1. For its etymology see Kangar union#Etymology
  2. 9th-century author Duan Chengshi described the Kyrgyz tribe (Jiankun buluo 堅昆部落) as "yellow-haired, green-eyed, red-mustached bearded". New Book of Tang (finished in 1060) describes Alats, a medieval Turkic people, as resembling Kyrgyzes who were "all tall, red-haired, pale-faced, green-irised"; New Book of Tang also states that Kyrgyzes regarded black hair as "infelicitous" and insisted that black-eyed individuals were descendants of Han general Li Ling.

Archaeology

International organizations

Map of TÜRKSOY members.
Further information: Pan-Turkism

There are several international organizations created with the purpose of furthering cooperation between countries with Turkic-speaking populations, such as the Joint Administration of Turkic Arts and Culture (TÜRKSOY) and the Parliamentary Assembly of Turkic-speaking Countries (TÜRKPA) and the Turkic Council.

  Members  Observer States

The TAKM – Organization of the Eurasian Law Enforcement Agencies with Military Status, was established on 25 January 2013. It is an intergovernmental military law enforcement (gendarmerie) organization of currently three Turkic countries (Azerbaijan, Kyrgyzstan and Turkey) and Kazakhstan as observer.

TÜRKSOY

Türksoy carries out activities to strengthen cultural ties between Turkic peoples. One of the main goals to transmit their common cultural heritage to future generations and promote it around the world.

Every year, one city in the Turkic world is selected as the "Cultural Capital of the Turkic World". Within the framework of events to celebrate the Cultural Capital of the Turkic World, numerous cultural events are held, gathering artists, scholars and intellectuals, giving them the opportunity to exchange their experiences, as well as promoting the city in question internationally.

Organization of Turkic States

The Organization of Turkic States, founded on 3 November 2009, by the Nakhchivan Agreement confederation, Kazakhstan, Kyrgyzstan and Turkey, aims to integrate these organizations into a tighter geopolitical framework.

The member countries are Azerbaijan, Kazakhstan, Kyrgyzstan, Turkey and Uzbekistan. The idea of setting up this cooperative council was first put forward by Kazakh President Nursultan Nazarbayev back in 2006. Hungary has announced to be interested in joining the Organization of Turkic States. Since August 2018, Hungary has official observer status in the Organization of Turkic States. Turkmenistan also joined as an observer state to the organization at 8th summit. Turkish Republic of Northern Cyprus was admitted to the organization as observer member at the 2022 Samarkand Summit.

Demographics

Bashkirs, painting from 1812, Paris

The distribution of people of Turkic cultural background ranges from Siberia, across Central Asia, to Southern Europe. As of 2011 the largest groups of Turkic people live throughout Central Asia—Kazakhstan, Kyrgyzstan, Turkmenistan, Uzbekistan, and Azerbaijan, in addition to Turkey and Iran. Additionally, Turkic people are found within Crimea, Altishahr region of western China, northern Iraq, Israel, Russia, Afghanistan, Cyprus, and the Balkans: Moldova, Bulgaria, Romania, Greece and former Yugoslavia.

A small number of Turkic people also live in Vilnius, the capital of Lithuania. Small numbers inhabit eastern Poland and the south-eastern part of Finland. There are also considerable populations of Turkic people (originating mostly from Turkey) in Germany, United States, and Australia, largely because of migrations during the 20th century.

Sometimes ethnographers group Turkic people into six branches: the Oghuz Turks, Kipchak, Karluk, Siberian, Chuvash, and Sakha/Yakut branches. The Oghuz have been termed Western Turks, while the remaining five, in such a classificatory scheme, are called Eastern Turks.

The genetic distances between the different populations of Uzbeks scattered across Uzbekistan is no greater than the distance between many of them and the Karakalpaks. This suggests that Karakalpaks and Uzbeks have very similar origins. The Karakalpaks have a somewhat greater bias towards the eastern markers than the Uzbeks.

Historical population:

Year Population
1 AD 2–2.5 million?
2013 150–200 million

The following incomplete list of Turkic people shows the respective groups' core areas of settlement and their estimated sizes (in millions):

People Primary homeland Population Modern language Predominant religion and sect
Turkish people Turkey 70 M Turkish Sunni Islam
Azerbaijanis Iranian Azerbaijan, Republic of Azerbaijan 30–35 M Azerbaijani Shia Islam (65%), Sunni Islam (35%) (Hanafi).
Uzbeks Uzbekistan 28.3 M Uzbek Sunni Islam
Kazakhs Kazakhstan 13.8 M Kazakh Sunni Islam
Uyghurs Altishahr (China) 9 M Uyghur Sunni Islam
Turkmens Turkmenistan 8 M Turkmen Sunni Islam
Tatars Tatarstan (Russia) 7 M Tatar Sunni Islam
Kyrgyzs Kyrgyzstan 4.5 M Kyrgyz Sunni Islam
Bashkirs Bashkortostan (Russia) 2 M Bashkir Sunni Islam
Crimean Tatars Crimea (Russia/Ukraine) 0.5 to 2 M Crimean Tatar Sunni Islam
Chuvashes Chuvashia (Russia) 1.7 M Chuvash Orthodox Christianity
Qashqai Southern Iran (Iran) 0.9 M Qashqai Shia Islam
Karakalpaks Karakalpakstan (Uzbekistan) 0.6 M Karakalpak Sunni Islam
Yakuts Yakutia (Russia) 0.5 M Sakha Orthodox Christianity and Turkic Paganism
Kumyks Dagestan (Russia) 0.4 M Kumyk Sunni Islam
Karachays and Balkars Karachay-Cherkessia and Kabardino-Balkaria (Russia) 0.4 M Karachay-Balkar Sunni Islam
Tuvans Tuva (Russia) 0.3 M Tuvan Tibetan Buddhism
Gagauzs Gagauzia (Moldova) 0.2 M Gagauz Orthodox Christianity
Turkic Karaites and Krymchaks Ukraine 0.004 M Karaim and Krymchak Judaism

Cuisine

Markets in the steppe region had a limited range of foodstuffs available—mostly grains, dried fruits, spices, and tea. Turks mostly herded sheep, goats and horses. Dairy was a staple of the nomadic diet and there are many Turkic words for various dairy products such as süt (milk), yagh (butter), ayran, qaymaq (similar to clotted cream), qi̅mi̅z (fermented mare's milk) and qurut (dried yoghurt). During the Middle Ages Kazakh, Kyrgyz and Tatars, who were historically part of the Turkic nomadic group known as the Golden Horde, continued to develop new variations of dairy products.

Nomadic Turks cooked their meals in a qazan, a pot similar to a cauldron; a wooden rack called a qasqan can be used to prepare certain steamed foods, like the traditional meat dumplings called manti. They also used a saj, a griddle that was traditionally placed on stones over a fire, and shish. In later times, the Persian tava was borrowed from the Persians for frying, but traditionally nomadic Turks did most of their cooking using the qazan, saj and shish. Meals were served in a bowl, called a chanaq, and eaten with a knife (bïchaq) and spoon (qashi̅q). Both bowl and spoon were historically made from wood. Other traditional utensils used in food preparation included a thin rolling pin called oqlaghu, a colander called süzgu̅çh, and a grinding stone called tāgirmān.

Medieval grain dishes included preparations of whole grains, soups, porridges, breads and pastries. Fried or toasted whole grains were called qawïrmach, while köchä was crushed grain that was cooked with dairy products. Salma were broad noodles that could be served with boiled or roasted meat; cut noodles were called tutmaj in the Middle Ages and are called kesme today.

There are many types of bread doughs in Turkic cuisine. Yupqa is the thinnest type of dough, bawi̅rsaq is a type of fried bread dough, and chälpäk is a deep fried flat bread. Qatlama is a fried bread that may be sprinkled with dried fruit or meat, rolled, and sliced like pinwheel sandwiches. Toqach and chöräk are varieties of bread, and böräk is a type of filled pie pastry.

Herd animals were usually slaughtered during the winter months and various types of sausages were prepared to preserve the meats, including a type of sausage called sujuk. Though prohibited by Islamic dietary restrictions, historically Turkic nomads also had a variety of blood sausage. One type of sausage, called qazi̅, was made from horsemeat and another variety was filled with a mixture of ground meat, offal and rice. Chopped meat was called qïyma and spit-roasted meat was söklünch—from the root sök- meaning "to tear off", the latter dish is known as kebab in modern times. Qawirma is a typical fried meat dish, and kullama is a soup of noodles and lamb.

Religion

Early Turkic mythology and Tengrism

A shaman doctor of Kyzyl.
Circle dance of Shamans 1911
Main articles: Turkic mythology, Tengrism, and Shamanism

Early Turkic mythology was dominated by Shamanism, Animism and Tengrism. The Turkic animistic traditions were mostly focused on ancestor worship, polytheistic-animism and shamanism. Later this animistic tradition would form the more organized Tengrism. The chief deity was Tengri, a sky god, worshipped by the upper classes of early Turkic society until Manichaeism was introduced as the official religion of the Uyghur Empire in 763.

The wolf symbolizes honour and is also considered the mother of most Turkic peoples. Ashina is the wolf mother of Tumen Il-Qağan, the first Khan of the Göktürks. The horse and predatory birds, such as the eagle or falcon, are also main figures of Turkic mythology.

Religious conversions

Buddhism

Buddhism played an important role in the history of Turkic peoples, with the first Turkic state adopting and supporting the spread of Buddhism being the Turkic Shahis and the Göktürks. The Göktürks syncretized Buddhism with their traditional religion Tengrism and also incorporated elements of the Iranian traditional religions, such as Zoroastrianism. Buddhism had its height among the Uyghurs in the Xinjiang region. Buddhism had also considerable impact and influence onto various other historical Turkic groups. In pre-Islamic times, Buddhism and Tengrism coexisted, with several Buddhist temples, monasteries, figures and steles, with images of Buddhist characters and sceneries, were constructed by various Turkic tribes. Throughout Kazakhstan, there exist various historical Buddhist sites, including an underground Buddhist cave monastery. After the Arab conquest of Central Asia, and the spread of Islam among locals, Buddhism (and Tengrism) started to lose ground, however a certain influence of the Buddhist teachings remained during the next centuries.

Tengri Bögü Khan initially made the now extinct Manichaeism the state religion of the Uyghur Khaganate in 763 and it was also popular among the Karluks. It was gradually replaced by the Mahayana Buddhism. It existed in the Buddhist Uyghur Gaochang up to the 12th century.

Tibetan Buddhism, or Vajrayana was the main religion after Manichaeism. They worshipped Täŋri Täŋrisi Burxan, Quanšï Im Pusar and Maitri Burxan. Turkic Muslim conquest in the Indian subcontinent and west Xinjiang attributed with a rapid and almost total disappearance of it and other religions in North India and Central Asia. The Sari Uygurs "Yellow Yughurs" of Western China, as well as the Tuvans of Russia are the only remaining Buddhist Turkic peoples.

Islam

Astana Grand Mosque, the largest mosque in Central Asia.

Most Turkic people today are Sunni Muslims, although a significant number in Turkey are Alevis. Alevi Turks, who were once primarily dwelling in eastern Anatolia, are today concentrated in major urban centers in western Turkey with the increased urbanism. Turkic Sunni Muslims generally follow the Hanafi rite. Azeris are traditionally Shiite Muslims. Religious observance is less strict in the Republic of Azerbaijan compared to Iranian Azerbaijan.

Muslim Uyghurs at prayer.

Islam first made contact with the Turkic peoples in 642, when Muslim armies crossed the Amu Darya after toppling the Sassanid Empire the year before. Some of the earliest rulers to convert to Islam were the Turkic princes of the city-states in the region of Sogdiana. Mass conversions did not take place until the Battle of Talas in 751, in which Turkic tribes sided with the Arabs against Chinese forces, which marked a significant milestone in the history of Islam in the region. From then onwards much of the Turkic heartland became Muslim. In the 19th century, Turkic Muslim progressives in the Russian Empire spearheaded a reformist movement called Jadidism, calling for a return to basic Islamic beliefs while simultaneously accepting modernist trends.

Christianity

Main article: Turkic Christians
Saint John the Baptist Cathedral in Gagauzia
Gravestone from Kirgistan (thirteenth/fourteenth century) with Syriac Christian inscriptions

The major Christian-Turkic peoples are the Chuvash of Chuvashia and the Gagauz (Gökoğuz) of Moldova, the vast majority of Chuvash and the Gagauz are Eastern Orthodox Christians. The traditional religion of the Chuvash of Russia, while containing many ancient Turkic concepts, also shares some elements with Zoroastrianism, Khazar Judaism, and Islam. The Chuvash converted to Eastern Orthodox Christianity for the most part in the second half of the 19th century. As a result, festivals and rites were made to coincide with Orthodox feasts, and Christian rites replaced their traditional counterparts. A minority of the Chuvash still profess their traditional faith. Between the 9th and 14th centuries, Church of the East was popular among Turks such as the Naimans. It even revived in Gaochang and expanded in Xinjiang in the Yuan dynasty period. It disappeared after its collapse.

Kryashens are a sub-group of the Volga Tatars, and the vast majority are Orthodox Christians. Nağaybäk are an indigenous Turkic people in Russia, most Nağaybäk are Christian and were largely converted during the 18th century. Many Volga Tatars were Christianized by Ivan the Terrible during the 16th century, and continued to Christianized under subsequent Russian rulers and Orthodox clergy up to the mid-eighteenth century.

Animism

Today there are several groups that support a revival of the ancient traditions. Especially after the collapse of the Soviet Union, many in Central Asia converted or openly practice animistic and shamanistic rituals. It is estimated that about 60% of Kyrgyz people practice a form of animistic rituals. In Kazakhstan there are about 54,000 followers of the ancient traditions.

Muslim Turks and non-Muslim Turks

An Old Uyghur Khagan

The Uyghur Turks, who once belonged to a variety of religions, were gradually Islamized during a period spanning the 10th and 13th centuries. Some scholars have linked the phenomenon of recently Islamized Uyghur soldiers recruited by the Mongol Empire to the slow conversion of Uyghur populations to Islam.

The non-Muslim Turks' worship of Tengri and other gods was mocked and insulted by the Muslim Turk Mahmud al-Kashgari, who wrote a verse referring to them – The Infidels – May God destroy them!

The Basmil, Yabāḳu and Uyghur states were among the Turkic peoples who fought against the Kara-Khanids spread of Islam. The Islamic Kara-Khanids were made out of Tukhsi, Yaghma, Çiğil and Karluk.

Kashgari claimed that the Prophet assisted in a miraculous event where 700,000 Yabāqu infidels were defeated by 40,000 Muslims led by Arslān Tegīn claiming that fires shot sparks from gates located on a green mountain towards the Yabāqu. The Yabaqu were a Turkic people.

Mahmud al-Kashgari insulted the Uyghur Buddhists as "Uighur dogs" and called them "Tats", which referred to the "Uighur infidels" according to the Tuxsi and Taghma, while other Turks called Persians "tat". While Kashgari displayed a different attitude towards the Turks diviners beliefs and "national customs", he expressed towards Buddhism a hatred in his Diwan where he wrote the verse cycle on the war against Uighur Buddhists. Buddhist origin words like toyin (a cleric or priest) and Burxān or Furxan (meaning Buddha, acquiring the generic meaning of "idol" in the Turkic language of Kashgari) had negative connotations to Muslim Turks.

Göktürk petroglyphs from Mongolia (6th to 8th century)
A Penjikent man dressed in "Turkic" long coats, 6th–8th c.

Old sports

Tepuk

Mahmud al-Kashgari in his Dīwān Lughāt al-Turk, described a game called "tepuk" among Turks in Central Asia. In the game, people try to attack each other's castle by kicking a ball made of sheep leather. (see also: Cuju)

Kyz kuu

Kyz kuu.

Kyz kuu (chase the girl) has been played by Turkic people at festivals since time immemorial.

Jereed

Horses have been essential and even sacred animals for Turks living as nomadic tribes in the Central Asian steppes. Turks were born, grew up, lived, fought and died on horseback. Jereed became the most important sporting and ceremonial game of Turkish people.

Kokpar

The kokpar began with the nomadic Turkic peoples who have come from farther north and east spreading westward from China and Mongolia between the 10th and 15th centuries.

Jigit

"jigit" is used in the Caucasus and Central Asia to describe a skillful and brave equestrian, or a brave person in general.

Gallery

Battle, hunting and blacksmithing scenes in Turkic rock art of the early Middle Ages in Altai

  • Turk vassal blacksmiths under Mongolian rule Turk vassal blacksmiths under Mongolian rule
  • Turkic hunting scene, Gokturk period Altai Turkic hunting scene, Gokturk period Altai
  • Battle scene of a Turkic horseman with typical long hair (Gokturk period, Altai) Battle scene of a Turkic horseman with typical long hair (Gokturk period, Altai)

Bezeklik caves and Mogao grottoes

Images of Buddhist and Manichean Old Uyghurs from the Bezeklik caves and Mogao grottoes.

  • Old Uyghur king from Turfan, from the murals at the Dunhuang Mogao Caves. Old Uyghur king from Turfan, from the murals at the Dunhuang Mogao Caves.
  • Old Uyghur prince from the Bezeklik murals. Old Uyghur prince from the Bezeklik murals.
  • Old Uyghur woman from the Bezeklik murals. Old Uyghur woman from the Bezeklik murals.
  • Old Uyghur Princess. Old Uyghur Princess.
  • Old Uyghur Princesses from the Bezeklik murals. Old Uyghur Princesses from the Bezeklik murals.
  • Old Uyghur Princes from the Bezeklik murals. Old Uyghur Princes from the Bezeklik murals.
  • Old Uyghur Prince from the Bezeklik murals. Old Uyghur Prince from the Bezeklik murals.
  • Old Uyghur noble from the Bezeklik murals. Old Uyghur noble from the Bezeklik murals.
  • Old Uyghur Manichaean Elect depicted on a temple banner from Qocho. Old Uyghur Manichaean Elect depicted on a temple banner from Qocho.
  • Old Uyghur donor from the Bezeklik murals. Old Uyghur donor from the Bezeklik murals.
  • Old Uyghur Manichaean Electae from Qocho. Old Uyghur Manichaean Electae from Qocho.
  • Old Uyghur Manichaean clergymen from Qocho. Old Uyghur Manichaean clergymen from Qocho.
  • Fresco of Palm Sunday from Qocho. Fresco of Palm Sunday from Qocho.
  • Manicheans from Qocho Manicheans from Qocho

Medieval times

Modern times

See also

References

  1. ^ Yunusbayev et al. 2015.
  2. Garibova, Jala (2011), "A Pan-Turkic Dream: Language Unification of Turks", in Fishman, Joshua; Garcia, Ofelia (eds.), Handbook of Language and Ethnic Identity: The Success-Failure Continuum in Language and Ethnic Identity Efforts, Oxford University Press, p. 268, ISBN 978-0-19-983799-1, Approximately 200 million people,... speak nearly 40 Turkic languages and dialects. Turkey is the largest Turkic state, with about 60 million ethnic Turks living in its territories.
  3. Hobbs, Joseph J. (2017), Fundamentals of World Regional Geography, Cengage, p. 223, ISBN 978-1-305-85495-6, The greatest are the 65 million Turks of Turkey, who speak Turkish, a Turkic language...
  4. "Uzbekistan". Statistics Committee of the Republic of Uzbekistan. 19 August 2021. Retrieved 13 February 2022. "Population: 34,600,000 (January 2021 est.)" "Ethnic groups: Uzbek 84.6%, Russian 2.1%, Tajik 4.9%, Kazakh 2.4%, Karakalpak 2.2%, other 4.1% (2021 est.)" Assuming Uzbek, Kazakh and Karakalpak are included as Turks, 84.6% + 2.4% + 2.2% = 89.2%. 89.2% of 34.6m = 31.9m
  5. "Azerbaijani (people)". Encyclopædia Britannica. Retrieved 24 January 2012. (15 million)
  6. Egbert Jahn, (2009). Nationalism in Late and Post-Communist Europe, p. 293 (20 mil)
  7. Library of Congress – Federal Research Division – Country Profile: Iran, May 2008, page 5
  8. "Kazakhstan". The World Factbook. Retrieved 21 December 2014. "Population: 17,948,816 (July 2014 est.)" "Ethnic groups: Kazakh (Qazaq) 63.1%, Russian 23.7%, Uzbek 2.9%, Ukrainian 2.1%, Uighur 1.4%, Tatar 1.3%, German 1.1%, other 4.4% (2009 est.)" Assuming Kazakh, Uzbek, Uighur and Tatar are included as Turks, 63.1% + 2.9% + 1.4% + 1.3% = 68.7%. 68.7% of 17.9m = 12.3m
  9. "China". The World Factbook. Retrieved 13 May 2014.
  10. "Azerbaijan". The World Factbook. Retrieved 30 July 2016. "Population: 9,780,780 (July 2015 est.)"
  11. "Census 2021: 84.6% of population define themselves as Bulgarians, 8.4% Turks, 4.4% Roma". 24 November 2022.
  12. "Afghanistan". The World Factbook. Retrieved 13 May 2014.
  13. "Uzbeks and Turkmens – Minorities and indigenous peoples in Afghanistan". World Directory of Minorities and Indigenous Peoples. 19 June 2015.
  14. Turner, B. (7 February 2017). The Statesman's Yearbook 2007: The Politics, Cultures and Economies of the World. Springer. p. 1238. ISBN 978-0-230-27135-7.
  15. Leitner, Gerhard; Hashim, Azirah; Wolf, Hans-Georg (11 January 2016). Communicating with Asia: The Future of English as a Global Language. Cambridge University Press. p. 241. ISBN 978-1-107-06261-0.
  16. Dresser, Norine (7 January 2011). Multicultural Manners: Essential Rules of Etiquette for the 21st Century. Wiley. p. 270. ISBN 978-1-118-04028-7.
  17. "Unpublished Census Provides Rare and Unvarnished Look at Turkmenistan". Jamestown.
  18. "First (actual) demographic data for Turkmenistan released". www.asianews.it.
  19. "Kyrgyzstan". The World Factbook. Retrieved 13 May 2014.
  20. Triana, María (2017), Managing Diversity in Organizations: A Global Perspective, Taylor & Francis, p. 168, ISBN 978-1-317-42368-3
  21. Bassem, Wassim (2016). "Iraq's Turkmens call for independent province". Al-Monitor. Archived from the original on 17 October 2016.
  22. "Tajikistan". The World Factbook. Retrieved 13 May 2014.
  23. "Obama, recognize us". St. Louis American. Archived from the original on 5 September 2014. Retrieved 18 March 2015.
  24. Nahost-Informationsdienst (ISSN 0949-1856): Presseausschnitte zu Politik, Wirtschaft und Gesellschaft in Nordafrika und dem Nahen und Mittleren Osten. Autors: Deutsches Orient–Institut; Deutsches Übersee–Institut. Hamburg: Deutsches Orient–Institut, 1996, seite 33.
  25. "All-Ukrainian population census 2001 – General results of the census – National composition of population". State Statistics Committee of Ukraine. 2003. Retrieved 2 September 2017.
  26. TRNC SPO, Economic and Social Indicators 2014, pages=2–3
  27. Michael, Michális (29 April 2016). Reconciling Cultural and Political Identities in a Globalized World: Perspectives on Australia-Turkey Relations. Springer. p. 29. ISBN 978-1-137-49315-6.
  28. "Mongolia". The World Factbook. Retrieved 13 May 2014.
  29. "2020 POPULATION AND HOUSING CENSUS OF MONGOLIA /summary/". Archived from the original on 15 July 2021.
  30. Al-Akhbar. "Lebanese Turks Seek Political and Social Recognition". Archived from the original on 20 June 2018. Retrieved 2 March 2012.
  31. "Tension adds to existing wounds in Lebanon". Today's Zaman. Archived from the original on 11 January 2012. Retrieved 6 April 2011.
  32. Ahmed, Yusra (2015), Syrian Turkmen refugees face double suffering in Lebanon, Zaman Al Wasl, archived from the original on 23 August 2017, retrieved 11 October 2016
  33. "Syria's Turkmen Refugees Face Cruel Reality in Lebanon". Syrian Observer. 2015. Retrieved 10 October 2016.
  34. "2017 Anuarul Statisitc al Republicii Moldova" (PDF) (in Romanian). Biroul Național de Statistică al Republicii Moldova. Retrieved 23 April 2022.
  35. "North Macedonia". The World Factbook. Retrieved 13 May 2014.
  36. "Census of Population, Households and Dwellings in the Republic of Macedonia, 2002" (PDF). Republic of Macedonia State Statistical Office. Retrieved 23 April 2022.
  37. Encyclopedia Britannica. Turkic peoples. "Turkic peoples, any of various peoples whose members speak languages belonging to the Turkic subfamily..."
  38. Yunusbayev et al. 2015, p. 1. "The Turkic peoples represent a diverse collection of ethnic groups defined by the Turkic languages."
  39. Uchiyama et al. 2020: "Most linguists and historians agree that Proto-Turkic, the common ancestor of all ancient and contemporary Turkic languages, must have been spoken somewhere in Central-East Asia (e.g. Róna-Tas, Reference Róna-Tas1991, p. 35; Golden, Reference Golden1992, pp. 124–127; Menges, Reference Menges1995, pp. 16–19)."
  40. ^ Golden 2011, pp. 37–38.
  41. ^ Uchiyama et al. 2020: "The ultimate Proto-Turkic homeland may have been located in a more compact area, most likely in Eastern Mongolia"
  42. ^ Lee & Kuang 2017: "The best candidate for the Turkic Urheimat would then be northern and western Mongolia and Tuva, where all these haplogroups could have intermingled, rather than eastern and southern Mongolia..."
  43. Uchiyama et al. 2020:"To sum up, the palaeolinguistic reconstruction points to a mixed subsistence strategy and complex economy of the Proto-Turkic-speaking community. It is likely that the subsistence of the Early Proto-Turkic speakers was based on a combination of hunting–gathering and agriculture, with a later shift to nomadic pastoralism as an economy basis, partly owing to the interaction of the Late Proto-Turkic groups with the Iranian-speaking herders of the Eastern Steppe."
    • Lee 2023, p. 4: "It should also be noted that even the early Turkic peoples, including the Tiele and the Türks, were made up of heterogeneous elements. Importantly, DNA studies demonstrate that the expansion process of the Turkic peoples involved the Turkicization of various non-Turkic-speaking groups. The “Turks” intermixed with and Turkicized various indigenous groups across Eurasia: Uralic hunter-gatherers in northern Eurasia; Mongolic nomads in Mongolia; Indo-European-speaking nomads and sedentary populations in Xinjiang, Transoxiana, Iran, Kazakhstan, and South Siberia; and Indo-European elements (the Byzantine subjects, among others) in Anatolia and the Balkans.11"
    • Findley 2005, p. 18: "Moreover, Turks do not all physically look alike. They never did. The Turks of Turkey are famous for their range of physical types. Given the Turks' ancient Inner Asian origins, it is easy to imagine that they once presented a uniform Mongoloid appearance. Such traits seem to be more characteristic in the eastern Turkic world; however, uniformity of type can never have prevailed there either. Archeological evidence indicates that Indo-Europeans, or certainly Europoid physical types, inhabited the oases of the Tarim basin, Dzungaria, and even parts of Mongolia in ancient times. In the Tarim basin, persistence of these former inhabitants' genes among the modern Uyghurs is both observable and scientifically demonstrable.32 Early Chinese sources describe the Kirghiz as blue-eyed and blond or red-haired. The genesis of Turkic ethnic groups from earliest times occurred in confederations of diverse peoples. As if to prove the point, the earliest surviving texts in Turkic languages are studded with terms from other languages."
    • Golden, Peter B. (25 July 2018). "The Ethnogonic Tales of the Türks". The Medieval History Journal. 21 (2): 291–327. doi:10.1177/0971945818775373. ISSN 0971-9458. S2CID 166026934."Some DNA tests point to the Iranian connections of the Ashina and Ashide,133 highlighting further that the Turks as a whole 'were made up of heterogeneous and somatically dissimilar populations'.134 Geographically, the accounts cover the regions of Inner Mongolia, Gansu, Xinjiang, the Yenisei zone and the Altay, regions with Turkic, Indo-European (Iranian and Tokharian), Yeniseic, Uralic and other populations. Wusun elements, like most steppe polities of an ethno-linguistic mix, may have also played a substratal role."
    • Lee & Kuang 2017: "Both Chinese histories and modern dna studies indicate that the early and medieval Turkic peoples were made up of heterogeneous populations"
  44. "Kultegin's Memorial Complex, TÜRIK BITIG". Orkhon inscriptions
  45. "Tonyukuk's Memorial Complex, TÜRIK BITIG". Bain Tsokto inscriptions
  46. Golden, Peter B. (25 July 2018). "The Ethnogonic Tales of the Türks". The Medieval History Journal. 21 (2): 291–327. doi:10.1177/0971945818775373. ISSN 0971-9458. S2CID 166026934.
  47. Golden 2011, Ethnogenesis in the tribal zone: The Shaping of the Turks.
  48. Lee, Joo-Yup (2016). "The Historical Meaning of the Term Turk and the Nature of the Turkic Identity of the Chinggisid and Timurid Elites in Post-Mongol Central Asia". Central Asiatic Journal. 59 (1–2): 103–108.
  49. Maue, Dieter. "The Khüis Tolgoi inscription – signs and sounds". Academia.edu. Retrieved 4 November 2018.
  50. Vovin, Alexander. "Interpretation of the Hüis Tolgoi Inscription". Academia.edu. Retrieved 4 November 2018.
  51. Vivin, Alexander (2019). "A Sketch of the Earliest Mongolic Language: the Brāhmī Bugut and Khüis Tolgoi Inscriptions". International Journal of Eurasian Linguistics. 1 (1): 162–197. doi:10.1163/25898833-12340008. S2CID 198833565.
  52. West, Barbara A. (19 May 2010). Encyclopedia of the Peoples of Asia and Oceania, p. 826. Infobase. ISBN 978-1-4381-1913-7. Retrieved 24 June 2020.
  53. "新亞研究所 – 典籍資料庫". Archived from the original on 21 February 2014. Retrieved 18 March 2015.
  54. Moriyasu & Ochir 1999, p. 123
  55. Pliny, Natural History – Harvard University Press, vol. II (Libri III-VII); reprinted 1961, p. 351
  56. Pomponius Mela's Description of the World, Pomponius Mela, University of Michigan Press, 1998, p. 67
  57. Prof. Dr. Ercümend Kuran, Türk Adı ve Türklük Kavramı, Türk Kültürü Dergisi, Yıl, XV, S. 174, Nisan 1977. s. 18–20.
  58. Minns, Ellis Hovell (1911). "Iyrcae" . In Chisholm, Hugh (ed.). Encyclopædia Britannica. Vol. 15 (11th ed.). Cambridge University Press. p. 102.
  59. Peter B. Golden, Introduction to the History of the Turkic People, p. 12: "... source (Herod.IV.22) and other authors of antiquity, Togarma of the Old Testament, Turukha/Turuska of Indic sources, Turukku of Assyrian..."
  60. German Archaeological Institute. Department Teheran, Archaeologische Mitteilungen aus Iran, Vol. 19, Dietrich Reimer, 1986, p. 90
  61. Sinor, Cambridge History of Early Inner Asia, Page 295
  62. Golden, Peter B. "Türks and Iranians: Aspects of Türk and Khazaro-Iranian Interaction". Turcologica (105): 25.
  63. (Bŭlgarska akademii︠a︡ na naukite. Otdelenie za ezikoznanie/ izkustvoznanie/ literatura, Linguistique balkanique, Vol. 27–28, 1984, p. 17
  64. "Türk" in Turkish Etymological Dictionary, Sevan Nişanyan.
  65. Faruk Suümer, Oghuzes (Turkmens): History, Tribal organization, Sagas, Turkish World Research Foundation, 1992, p. 16)
  66. American Heritage Dictionary (2000). The American Heritage Dictionary of the English Language: Fourth Edition – "Turk"". bartleby.com. Retrieved 7 December 2006.
  67. Golden, Peter B. "Some Thoughts on the Origins of the Turks and the Shaping of the Turkic Peoples". (2006) In: Contact and Exchange in the Ancient World. Ed. Victor H. Mair. University of Hawaiʻi Press. p. 143.
  68. Golden, Peter B. (1992), An Introduction to the History of the Turkic Peoples, p. 93-95
  69. T. Allsen, P. B. Golden, R. K. Kovalev, and A. P. Martinez (2012), ARCHIVUM EURASIAEMEDII AEV, p. 85
  70. Clauson, G. An Etymological Dictionary of Pre-13th Century Turkish (1972). p. 542-543
  71. Aydemir, Hakan (2–3 December 2022). "TÜRK Adının Kökeni Üzerine (On the origin of the ethnonym TÜRK 'Turkic, Turkish') + an English abstract". In Şahin, İbrahim; Akgün, Atıf (eds.). Türk Dunyası Sosyal Bilimler - Sempozyumu (in Turkish). İzmir: Ege University.
  72. The Peoples of the Steppe Frontier in Early Chinese Sources, Edwin G. Pulleyblank, page 35
  73. Golden 2011, p. 27.
  74. ^ Pulleyblank, "Central Asia and Non-Chinese Peoples of Ancient China", p. VII 21–26.
  75. ^ Duan, "Dingling, Gaoju and Tiele", p. 370.
  76. Theobald, Ulrich (2012). "Xiajiasi 黠戛斯, Qirqiz" for ChinaKnowledge.de – An Encyclopaedia on Chinese History, Literature and Art
  77. Pulleyblank, Edwin G. "The Name of the Kirghiz" in Central Asiatic Journal, Vol. 34, No. 1/2 (1990). Harrassowitz Verlag. page 98-99 of 98–108.
  78. Hyun Jin Kim: Huns, Rome and the Birth of Europe. Cambridge University Press, 2013. pp.175–176.
  79. Lee & Kuang 2017, p. 200"Historians know with certainty that the Dingling were a Turkic people"
  80. Xu Elina-Qian, Historical Development of the Pre-Dynastic Khitan, University of Helsinki, 2005. p. 176.
  81. Dickens 2018, p. 1346: "Greek authors frequently applied the name Scythians to later nomadic groups who had no relation whatever to the original Scythians"
  82. Ivantchik 2018.
  83. G. Moravcsik, Byzantinoturcica II, p. 236–39
  84. Jean-Paul Roux, Historie des Turks – Deux mille ans du Pacifique á la Méditerranée. Librairie Arthème Fayard, 2000.
  85. Vryonis, Speros. Studies on Byzantium, Seljuks, and Ottomans: Reprinted Studies. Undena Publications, 1981, ISBN 0-89003-071-5, p. 305. "The origins of the Karamanlides have long been disputed, there being two basic theories on the subject. According to one, they are the remnants of the Greek-speaking Byzantine population which, though it remained Orthodox, was linguistically Turkified. The second theory holds that they were originally Turkish soldiers which the Byzantine emperors had settled in Anatolia in large numbers and who retained their language and Christian religion after the Turkish conquests..."
  86. Baydar 2016, p. 21
  87. R. Grousset, The Empire of the Steppes, New Brunswick, NJ, Rutgers University Press, 1970, p191.
  88. Moffett, A History of Christianity in Asia pp. 400-401.
  89. Encyclopedia Britannica. Turkic peoples.
  90. Pritsak O. & Golb. N: Khazarian Hebrew Documents of the Tenth Century, Ithaca: Cornell Univ. Press, 1982.
  91. "Timur Archived 2013-09-22 at the Wayback Machine", The Columbia Encyclopedia, Sixth Edition, 2001–05, Columbia University Press.
  92. Encyclopædia Britannica article: Consolidation & expansion of the Indo-Timurids, Online Edition, 2007.
  93. Walton, Linda (2013). World History: Journeys from Past to Present. Routledge. p. 210. ISBN 978-1-135-08828-6.
  94. Peter Benjamin Golden, (1992), An Introduction to the History of the Turkic Peoples, p. 110
  95. *Pulleyblank, Edwin G. (2000). "Ji 姬 and Jiang 姜: The Role of Exogamic Clans in the Organization of the Zhou Polity", Early China. p. 20
  96. Wei Shou. Book of Wei. Vol. 1
  97. Tseng, Chin Yin (2012). The Making of the Tuoba Northern Wei: Constructing Material Cultural Expressions in the Northern Wei Pingcheng Period (398–494 CE) (PhD). University of Oxford. p. 1.
  98. Wei Shou. Book of Wei. vol. 91 "蠕蠕,東胡之苗裔也,姓郁久閭氏。" tr. "Rúrú, offsprings of Dōnghú, surnamed Yùjiŭlǘ"
  99. Book of Song. vol 95. "芮芮一號大檀,又號檀檀,亦匈奴別種" tr. "Ruìruì, one appellation is Dàtán, also called Tántán, likewise a Xiōngnú splinter stock"
  100. Xu Elina-Qian, Historical Development of the Pre-Dynastic Khitan, University of Helsinki, 2005. p. 179-180
  101. Lee, Joo-Yup (2016). "The Historical Meaning of the Term Turk and the Nature of the Turkic Identity of the Chinggisid and Timurid Elites in Post-Mongol Central Asia". Central Asiatic Journal. 59 (1–2): 105.
  102. Turkic Language family tree entries provide the information on the Turkic-speaking populations and regions.
  103. Katzner, Kenneth (March 2002). Languages of the World, Third Edition. Routledge, an imprint of Taylor & Francis Books Ltd. ISBN 978-0-415-25004-7.
  104. Turkic peoples, Encyclopædia Britannica, Online Academic Edition, 2008
  105. Lyle Campbell and Mauricio J. Mixco (2007): A Glossary of Historical Linguistics; University of Utah Press. Page 7.
  106. Johanna Nichols (1992) Linguistic Diversity in Space and Time. Chicago University Press. Page 4.
  107. R. M. W. Dixon (1997): The Rise and Fall of Languages. Cambridge University Press. Page 32.
  108. Asya Pereltsvaig (2012) Languages of the World, An Introduction. Cambridge University Press. Pages 211–216.
  109. De la Fuente, José Andrés Alonso (2016). "Review of Robbeets, Martine (2015): Diachrony of verb morphology. Japanese and the Transeurasian languages". Diachronica. 33 (4): 530–537. doi:10.1075/dia.33.4.04alo.
  110. Vasiliev D.D. Graphical fund of Turkic runiform writing monuments in Asian areal, М., 1983, p. 44
  111. Tekin 1993, p. 1
  112. Yunusbayev et al. 2015, pp. 1–2.
  113. ^ Yunusbayev, Bayazit; Metspalu, Mait; Metspalu, Ene; Valeev, Albert; Litvinov, Sergei; Valiev, Ruslan; Akhmetova, Vita; Balanovska, Elena; Balanovsky, Oleg; Turdikulova, Shahlo; Dalimova, Dilbar; Nymadawa, Pagbajabyn; Bahmanimehr, Ardeshir; Sahakyan, Hovhannes; Tambets, Kristiina (21 April 2015). "The Genetic Legacy of the Expansion of Turkic-Speaking Nomads across Eurasia". PLOS Genetics. 11 (4): e1005068. doi:10.1371/journal.pgen.1005068. ISSN 1553-7404. PMC 4405460. PMID 25898006.
  114. Golden, Peter B. (27 April 2018), "THE CONSTRUCTION OF ETHNICITY IN MEDIEVAL TURKIC EURASIA", in Schmidtke, Sabine (ed.), Studying the Near and Middle East at the Institute for Advanced Study, Princeton, 1935–2018, Gorgias Press, pp. 420–428, doi:10.31826/9781463240035-054, ISBN 978-1-4632-4003-5, S2CID 198684158, retrieved 28 September 2023

    The ancient Turkic Urheimat appears to have been located in Southern Siberia from the Lake Baikal region to Eastern Mongolia. The "Proto-Turks" in their Southern Siberian-Mongolian "homeland" were in contact with speakers of Eastern Iranian (Scytho-Sakas, who were also in Mongolia), Uralic and Paleo-Siberian languages.

  115. Janhunen 2003, p. 203: "There is, indeed, reason to assume that Mongolia is primarily the source region of the Turkic language family, while the Mongolic homeland was located further to the east, in western Manchuria."
  116. Wang, Chuan-Chao; Yeh, Hui-Yuan; Popov, Alexander N.; Zhang, Hu-Qin; Matsumura, Hirofumi; Sirak, Kendra; Cheronet, Olivia; Kovalev, Alexey; Rohland, Nadin; Kim, Alexander M.; Mallick, Swapan; Bernardos, Rebecca; Tumen, Dashtseveg; Zhao, Jing; Liu, Yi-Chang (March 2021). "Genomic insights into the formation of human populations in East Asia". Nature. 591 (7850): 413–419. Bibcode:2021Natur.591..413W. doi:10.1038/s41586-021-03336-2. ISSN 1476-4687. PMC 7993749. PMID 33618348.
  117. Fuente, José Andrés Alonso de la (1 January 2016). "Diachrony of verb morphology: Japanese and the Transeurasian languages". Diachronica. 33 (4): 530–537. doi:10.1075/dia.33.4.04alo. ISSN 0176-4225.
  118. Dybo, Anna (1 January 2017). "New trends in European studies on the Altaic problem". Journal of Language Relationship. 14 (1–2): 71–106. doi:10.31826/jlr-2017-141-208. ISSN 2219-4029. S2CID 212688205.
  119. ^ Nelson et al. 2020.
  120. ^ Li et al. 2020.
  121. ^ Uchiyama et al. 2020.
  122. ^ He, Guang-Lin; Wang, Meng-Ge; Zou, Xing; Yeh, Hui-Yuan; Liu, Chang-Hui; Liu, Chao; Chen, Gang; Wang, Chuan-Chao (January 2022). "Extensive ethnolinguistic diversity at the crossroads of North China and South Siberia reflects multiple sources of genetic diversity". Journal of Systematics and Evolution. 61 (1): 230–250. doi:10.1111/jse.12827. ISSN 1674-4918. S2CID 245849003. All Altaic-speaking populations were a mixture of dominant Siberian Neolithic ancestry and non-negligible YRB ancestry, suggesting that Altaic-people and their language were more likely to originate from the Northeast Asia (mostly likely the ARB and surrounding regions as the primary common ancestry identified here) and further experienced influence from Neolithic YRB farmers. All Altaic people but eastern and southern Mongolic-speaking populations possessed a high proportion of West Eurasian-related ancestry, in accordance with the linguistically documented language borrowing in Turkic language.
  123. Yang, Meng & Zhang 2023.
  124. Uchiyama et al. 2020: "Although current genetic evidence is not adequate to track the exact time and location for the origin of the proto-Turkic language, it is clear that it probably originated somewhere in northeastern Asia given the fact that the nomadic groups, such as the Rouran, Xiongnu and the Xianbei, all share a substratum genetic ancestry that falls into or close to the northeast Asian gene pool (Ning et al., Reference Ning, Li, Wang, Zhang, Li, Wu and Cuiin press; Li et al., Reference Li, Zhang, Zhao, Chen, Ochir, Sarenbilige and Zhou2018)."
  125. Damgaard, Peter de Barros; Marchi, Nina; Rasmussen, Simon; Peyrot, Michaël; Renaud, Gabriel; Korneliussen, Thorfinn; Moreno-Mayar, J. Víctor; Pedersen, Mikkel Winther; Goldberg, Amy; Usmanova, Emma; Baimukhanov, Nurbol; Loman, Valeriy; Hedeager, Lotte; Pedersen, Anders Gorm; Nielsen, Kasper (May 2018). "137 ancient human genomes from across the Eurasian steppes". Nature. 557 (7705): 369–374. Bibcode:2018Natur.557..369D. doi:10.1038/s41586-018-0094-2. hdl:1887/3202709. ISSN 1476-4687. PMID 29743675. S2CID 13670282. The diversification within the Turkic languages suggests that several waves of migrations occurred35, and on the basis of the impact of local languages gradual assimilation to local populations were already assumed36. The East Asian migration starting with the Xiongnu complies well with the hypothesis that early Turkic was their major language37. Further migrations of East Asians westwards find a good linguistic correlate in the influence of Mongolian on Turkic and Iranian in the last millennium38. As such, the genomic history of the Eurasian steppe is the story of a gradual transition from Bronze Age pastoralists of western Eurasian ancestry, towards mounted warriors of increased East Asian ancestry – a process that continued well into historical times.
  126. Guarino-Vignon, Perle; Marchi, Nina; Bendezu-Sarmiento, Julio; Heyer, Evelyne; Bon, Céline (14 January 2022). "Genetic continuity of Indo-Iranian speakers since the Iron Age in southern Central Asia". Scientific Reports. 12 (1): 733. Bibcode:2022NatSR..12..733G. doi:10.1038/s41598-021-04144-4. ISSN 2045-2322. PMC 8760286. PMID 35031610. Modern DNA studies suggested that the Indo-Iranian group was present in Central Asia before the Turko-Mongol group11, maybe as early as Neolithic times; the Turko-Mongol group emerged later from the admixture between a group related to local Indo-Iranian and a South-Siberian or Mongolian group11,13,14 with a high East-Asian ancestry (around 60%).
  127. Dai, Shan-Shan; Sulaiman, Xierzhatijiang; Isakova, Jainagul; Xu, Wei-Fang; Abdulloevich, Najmudinov Tojiddin; Afanasevna, Manilova Elena; Ibrohimovich, Khudoidodov Behruz; Chen, Xi; Yang, Wei-Kang; Wang, Ming-Shan; Shen, Quan-Kuan; Yang, Xing-Yan; Yao, Yong-Gang; Aldashev, Almaz A; Saidov, Abdusattor (25 August 2022). "The Genetic Echo of the Tarim Mummies in Modern Central Asians". Molecular Biology and Evolution. 39 (9). doi:10.1093/molbev/msac179. ISSN 0737-4038. PMC 9469894. PMID 36006373. By contrast, the Kyrgyz, together with other Turkic-speaking populations, originated from the admixture since the Iron Age. The Historical Era gene flow derived from the Eastern Steppe with the representative of Mongolia_Xiongnu_o1 made a more substantial contribution to Kyrgyz and other Turkic-speaking populations (i.e., Kazakh, Uyghur, Turkmen, and Uzbek; 34.9–55.2%) higher than that to the Tajik populations (11.6–18.6%; fig. 4A), suggesting Tajiks suffer fewer impacts of the recent admixtures (Martínez-Cruz et al. 2011). Consequently, the Tajik populations generally present patterns of genetic continuity of Central Asians since the Bronze Age. Our results are consistent with linguistic and genetic evidence that the spreading of Indo-European speakers into Central Asia was earlier than the expansion of Turkic speakers (Kuz′mina and Mallory 2007; Yunusbayev et al. 2015).
  128. ^ Yang, Meng & Zhang 2023
  129. Yang, Meng & Zhang 2023: "The early Medieval Türk (earlyMed_Turk) derived the major ancestry from ANA at a proportion of 62.2%, the remainder from BMAC (10.7%) and Western Steppe Afanasievo nomad (27.1%) (Figs. 1C, 1D; Table S2E)."
  130. Yang, Meng & Zhang 2023: "Central Steppe Türk (Kyrgyzstan_Turk and Kazakhstan_Turk) could be modeled as an admixture of ANA (Mongolia_N_North), BMAC, and West Steppe pastoralists (Afanasievo) (P = 0.0196)"
  131. Yang, Meng & Zhang 2023: "In contrast, the early West Xiongnu (earlyXiongnu_west) and late Sarmatian Xiongnu (lateXiongnu_Sarmatian) derived ancestry mainly from West Eurasian; for example, early West Xiongnu exhibited 68.4% Afanasievo‐related ancestry. Among the Central Steppe pastoralists, Wusun, Kangju, and Tianshan Hun derived a majority of their ancestry (62.4%–73%) from Western Steppe nomadic Afanasievo groups with the remainder (37.6%–27%) characterized as BMAC (the Bactria‐Margiana Archaeological Complex) and East Eurasian. The Turkic Karluk, Kipchak, and Karakhanid could be modeled derived 35%–50.6% of ancestry from Afanasievo, 10.5%–21.7% from BMAC, and 38.9%–49.4% from YR_IA."
  132. Jeong C, Wang K, Wilkin S, Taylor WT, Miller BK, Bemmann JH, et al. (2020). "A Dynamic 6,000-Year Genetic History of Eurasia's Eastern Steppe". Cell. 183 (4): 890–904.e29. doi:10.1016/j.cell.2020.10.015. PMC 7664836. PMID 33157037. From the late first millennium BCE onward, a series of hierarchical and centrally organized empires arose on the Eastern Steppe, notably the Xiongnu (209 BCE–98 CE), Türkic (552–742 CE), Uyghur (744–840 CE), and Khitan (916–1125 CE) empires...Genetic data for the subsequent Early Medieval period are relatively sparse and uneven, and few Xianbei or Rouran sites have yet been identified during the 400-year gap between the Xiongnu and Türkic periods. We observed high genetic heterogeneity and diversity during the Türkic and Uyghur periods...
  133. Sima Qian Records of the Grand Historian Vol. 110 "後北服渾庾、屈射、丁零、鬲昆、薪犁之國。於是匈奴貴人大臣皆服,以冒頓單于爲賢。" tr. "Later north subjugated the nations of Hunyu, Qushe, Dingling, Gekun, and Xinli. Therefore, the Xiongnu nobles and dignitaries all admired regarded Modun chanyu as capable"
  134. ^ Peter Zieme: The Old Turkish Empires in Mongolia. In: Genghis Khan and his heirs. The Empire of the Mongols. Special tape for Exhibition 2005/2006, p. 64
  135. Findley (2005), p. 29.
  136. Suishu, vol. 84
  137. Pulleyblank, E. G. "The Name of the Kirghiz." Central Asiatic Journal 34, no. 1/2 (1990). p. 99
  138. Pulleyblank, Edwin G. (1991). "The 'High Carts': A Turkish-Speaking People before the Türks". Asia Major. Third series. 3 (1). Academia Sinica: 21–22.
  139. Weishu, vol. 103 "高車,蓋古赤狄之餘種也,初號為狄歷,北方以為勑勒,諸夏以為高車、丁零。其語略與匈奴同而時有小異,或云其先匈奴之甥也" tr.
  140. "丁零—铁勒的西迁及其所建西域政权". Archived from the original on 15 July 2015. Retrieved 18 March 2015.
  141. Cheng Fangyi. "The Research on the Identification Between Tiele (鐵勒) and the Oghuric Tribes". Archivum Eurasiae Medii Aevi: 81–114.
  142. Cheng (2012), p. 84-87
  143. Lee, Joo-Yup (2016). "The Historical Meaning of the Term Turk and the Nature of the Turkic Identity of the Chinggisid and Timurid Elites in Post-Mongol Central Asia". Central Asiatic Journal. 59 (1–2): 101–32. doi:10.13173/centasiaj.59.1-2.0101.
  144. Tang, Li. "A Brief Description of the Early and Medieval Türks" in Turkic Christians in Central Asia and China (5th – 14th Centuries), Studies in Turkic philology. Minzu University Press. p. VII.
  145. Duan: Dingling, Gaoju and Tiele. 1988, pp. 39–41
  146. Xue, Zongzheng History of Turks (1992). 39–85
  147. Rachel Lung, Interpreters in Early Imperial China, John Benjamins Publishing Company, 2011, p. 48 "Türk, or Türküt, refers to a state of Ašina clan (of Tiele tribe by ancestral lineage)"
  148. Duan: Dingling, Gaoju and Tiele. 1988, pp. 39–41
  149. Suribadalaha, "New Studies of the Origins of the Mongols", p. 46–47
  150. Cheng, Fangyi. "The Research on the Identification Between Tiele and the Oghuric Tribes".
  151. Lee & Kuang 2017, p. 201-202.
  152. Hucker, Charles O. (1975). China's Imperial Past: An Introduction to Chinese History and Culture. Stanford University Press. ISBN 0-8047-2353-2.
  153. Savelyev, Alexander; Jeong, Choongwon (10 May 2020). "Early nomads of the Eastern Steppe and their tentative connections in the West". Evolutionary Human Sciences. 2. doi:10.1017/ehs.2020.18. hdl:21.11116/0000-0007-772B-4. PMC 7612788. PMID 35663512. S2CID 218935871.
  154. Silk-Road:Xiongnu
  155. "An Introduction to the Turkic Tribes". Retrieved 18 March 2015.
  156. Haug, Robert (27 June 2019). The Eastern Frontier: Limits of Empire in Late Antique and Early Medieval Central Asia. Bloomsbury Publishing. p. 64. ISBN 978-1-78831-722-1. The Türks emerged from the Āshĭnà clan, of probable Xiōngnú descent, part of the military nobility of the Róurán.
  157. Lebedynsky (2006), p. 59.
  158. Nicola di Cosmo, Ancient China and its Enemies, S. 163ff.
  159. Ebrey, Patricia Buckley (2010). The Cambridge Illustrated History of China (2nd ed.). Cambridge University Press. p. 69. ISBN 978-0-521-12433-1.
  160. Savelyev & Jeong 2020:"Specifically, individuals from Iron Age steppe and Xiongnu have an ancestry related to present-day and ancient Iranian/Caucasus/Turan populations in addition to the ancestry components derived from the Late Bronze Age populations. We estimate that they derive between 5 and 25% of their ancestry from this new source, with 18% for Xiongnu (Table 2). We speculate that the introduction of this new western Eurasian ancestry may be linked to the Iranian elements in the Xiongnu linguistic material, while the Turkic-related component may be brought by their eastern Eurasian genetic substratum." Table 2: Sintashta_MLBA, 0.239; Khovsgol LBA, 0.582; Gonur1 BA 0.178
  161. MA Li-qing On the new evidence on Xiongnu's writings. Archived 19 October 2007 at the Wayback Machine(Wanfang Data: Digital Periodicals, 2004)
  162. Paola Demattè Writing the Landscape: the Petroglyphs of Inner Mongolia and Ningxia Province (China). (Paper presented at the First International Conference of Eurasian Archaeology, University of Chicago, 3–4 May 2002.)
  163. N. Ishjatms, "Nomads In Eastern Central Asia", in the History of civilizations of Central Asia, Volume 2, Fig 6, p. 166, UNESCO Publishing, 1996, ISBN 92-3-102846-4
  164. Haug, Robert (27 June 2019). The Eastern Frontier: Limits of Empire in Late Antique and Early Medieval Central Asia. Bloomsbury Publishing. p. 65. ISBN 978-1-78831-722-1. The collapse of the Hephthalite domains made neighbours of the Türk Khāqānate and the Sasanian Empire, both sharing a border that ran the length of the River Oxus. Further Turkish expansion to the west and around the Caspian Sea saw them dominate the western steppes and its people and extend this frontier down to the Caucasus where they also shared a border with the Sasanians. Khusrow is noted at the time for improving the fortifications on either side of the Caspian, Bāb al-Abwāb at Derbent and the Great Wall of Gorgān.
  165. Tasar, Eren; Frank, Allen J.; Eden, Jeff (11 October 2021). From the Khan's Oven: Studies on the History of Central Asian Religions in Honor of Devin DeWeese. BRILL. p. 9. ISBN 978-90-04-47117-7. "The Türks, while still vassals of the Rouran, are first mentioned in the Zhoushu (chap. 50) in the early 540s when they came to the border seeking to obtain silk goods and establish a relationship with China. Shortly thereafter a series of embassies in 545 and 546 between the Türks and the Western Wei followed in which a Sogdian, An Nuopantuo (Nakbanda), represented China."
  166. ^ Wei Zheng et al., Suishu, vol. 84 quote: "突厥之先,平涼雜胡也,姓阿史那氏。後魏太武滅沮渠氏,阿史那以五百家奔茹茹,世居金山,工於鐵作。金山狀如兜鍪,俗呼兜鍪為「突厥」,因以為號。"
  167. Du You, Tongdian vol. 197 quote: "突厥之先,平涼今平涼郡雜胡也,蓋匈奴之別種,姓阿史那氏。後魏太武滅沮渠氏,沮渠茂虔都姑臧,謂之北涼,為魏所滅。阿史那以五百家奔蠕蠕,代居金山,狀如兜鍪,俗呼兜鍪為「突厥」,因以為號。"
  168. Linghu Defen et al., Zhoushu, vol. 50 quote: "突厥者,蓋匈奴之別種,姓阿史那氏。"
  169. Beishi "vol. 99 – section Tujue" quote: "突厥者,其先居西海之右,獨為部落,蓋匈奴之別種也。" translation: "The Tujue, their ancestors dwelt on the right bank of the Western Sea; a lone tribe, probably a separate branch of the Xiongnu"
  170. Golden, Peter B. (August 2018). "The Ethnogonic Tales of the Türks". The Medieval History Journal, 21 (2): p. 298 of 291–327, fn. 36.
  171. Xin Tangshu, vol. 215A. "突厥阿史那氏, 蓋古匈奴北部也." "The Ashina family of the Turk probably were the northern tribes of the ancient Xiongnu." quoted and translated in Xu (2005), Historical Development of the Pre-Dynastic Khitan, University of Helsinki, 2005
  172. Zhoushu, "vol. 50" "或云突厥之先出於索國,在匈奴之北。"
  173. Beishi "vol. 99 – section Tujue" quote: "又曰突厥之先,出於索國,在匈奴之北。"
  174. Zhoushu, "vol. 50" quote: "居金山之陽,為茹茹鐵工。金山形似兜鍪,其俗謂兜鍪為「突厥」,遂因以為號焉。"
  175. ^ Carter V. Findley, The Turks in World History (Oxford University Press, October 2004) ISBN 0-19-517726-6
  176. Golden, P.B. (1992) An Introduction to the History of the Turkic Peoples. Series Turcologica, Band IX. Otto-Harrassowitz. p. 117
  177. Türk Tarih Kongresi (in Turkish). Türk Tarih Kurumu. 1999. ISBN 978-975-16-0260-2.
  178. West, Barbara A. (19 May 2010). Encyclopedia of the Peoples of Asia and Oceania. Infobase Publishing. p. 829. ISBN 978-1-4381-1913-7.
  179. ^ Haywood, John (1998), Historical Atlas of the Medieval World, AD 600–1492, Barnes & Noble
  180. McLynn, Frank (14 July 2015). Genghis Khan: His Conquests, His Empire, His Legacy. Hachette Books. p. 436. ISBN 978-0-306-82395-4.
  181. Figes, Orlando (20 September 2022). The Story of Russia. Metropolitan Books. pp. 45–46. ISBN 978-1-250-79690-5.
  182. Soucek, Branko; Soucek, Svat (17 February 2000). A History of Inner Asia. Cambridge University Press. p. 29. ISBN 978-0-521-65704-4."The Kipchak Turkic - speaking khans of Sibir had ruled there from the thirteenth century to the sixteenth , and their realm represented the northernmost position ever occupied by an Islamic state."
  183. Benson, Linda; Svanberg, Ingvar (2016). China's Last Nomads: History and Culture of China's Kazaks. Routledge. p. 35. ISBN 978-1-315-28519-1.
  184. Benson & Svanberg 2016, p. 65
  185. Szostak, Rick (22 October 2020). Making Sense of World History. Routledge. p. 672. ISBN 978-1-000-20167-3.
  186. Foltz, Richard (1 November 2013). Religions of Iran: From Prehistory to the Present. Simon and Schuster. p. 256. ISBN 978-1-78074-309-7.
  187. Golden, Peter B. (14 January 2011). Central Asia in World History. Oxford University Press. p. 47. ISBN 978-0-19-972203-7.
  188. Yuan, Hong (14 November 2022). From the Khitans to the Jurchens & Mongols: A History of Barbarians in Triangle Wars & Quartet Conflicts. ISBN 978-1-6632-4258-7.
  189. Baumer, Christoph (18 April 2018). History of Central Asia, the: 4-volume set. ISBN 978-1-83860-868-2.
  190. Zizhi Tongjian, vol. 246.
  191. Zizhi Tongjian, vol. 247.
  192. Dardess, John W. (10 September 2010). Governing China: 150-1850. ISBN 978-1-60384-447-5.
  193. Ven, Hans van de (26 July 2021). Warfare in Chinese History. ISBN 978-90-04-48294-4.
  194. Wudai Shi, ch. 75. Considering the father was originally called Nieliji without a surname, the fact that his patrilineal ancestors all had Chinese names here indicates that these names were probably all created posthumously after Shi Jingtang became a "Chinese" emperor. Shi Jingtang actually claimed to be a descendant of Chinese historical figures Shi Que and Shi Fen, and insisted that his ancestors went westwards towards non-Han Chinese area during the political chaos at the end of the Han Dynasty in the early 3rd century.
  195. According to Old History of the Five Dynasties, vol. 99, and New History of the Five Dynasties, vol. 10. Liu Zhiyuan was of Shatuo origin. According to Wudai Huiyao, vol. 1 Liu Zhiyuan's great-great-grandfather Liu Tuan (劉湍) (titled as Emperor Mingyuan posthumously, granted the temple name of Wenzu) descended from Liu Bing (劉昞), Prince of Huaiyang, a son of Emperor Ming of Han
  196. According to Old History of the Five Dynasties, vol. 99, and New History of the Five Dynasties, vol. 10. Liu Zhiyuan was of Shatuo origin. According to Wudai Huiyao, vol. 1 Liu Zhiyuan's great-great-grandfather Liu Tuan (劉湍) (titled as Emperor Mingyuan posthumously, granted the temple name of Wenzu) descended from Liu Bing (劉昞), Prince of Huaiyang, a son of Emperor Ming of Han
  197. ^ Theobald, Ulrich. "Shatuo Türks 沙陀突厥 (www.chinaknowledge.de)". chinaknowledge.de. Retrieved 30 April 2019.
  198. Mote, F.W.: Imperial China: 900–1800, Harvard University Press, 1999
  199. Song Lian et al., History of Yuan, "Vol. 118" "阿剌兀思剔吉忽里,汪古部人,係出沙陀雁門之後。" Alawusi Tijihuli, a man of the Ongud tribe, descendant(s) of the Wild Goose Pass's Shatuo
  200. ^ Paulillo, Mauricio. "White Tatars: The Problem of the Öngũt conversion to Jingjiao and the Uighur Connection" in From the Oxus River to the Chinese Shores: Studies on East Syriac Christianity in China and Central Asia (orientalia - patristica - oecumenica) Ed. Tang, Winkler. (2013) pp. 237-252
  201. Аристов Н. А. (2003). Труды по истории и этническому составу тюркских племен (PDF). Бишкек: Илим. p. 103. ISBN 5-8355-1297-X. Archived from the original (PDF) on 1 January 2017.
  202. Очир А. (2016). Э. П. Бакаева; К. В. Орлова (eds.). Монгольские этнонимы: вопросы происхождения и этнического состава монгольских народов (PDF). Элиста: КИГИ РАН. pp. 133–135. ISBN 978-5-903833-93-1.
  203. Ozkan Izgi, "The ancient cultures of Central Asia and the relations with the Chinese civilization" The Turks, Ankara, 2002, p. 98, ISBN 975-6782-56-0
  204. Mierse, William E. (31 December 2022). Artifacts from the Ancient Silk Road. ABC-CLIO. p. xlvii. ISBN 978-1-4408-5829-1.
  205. Holdstock, Nick (13 June 2019). China's Forgotten People: Xinjiang, Terror and the Chinese State. Bloomsbury Publishing. p. 17. ISBN 978-1-78831-982-9.
  206. Róna-Tas, András (1 March 1999). Hungarians and Europe in the Early Middle Ages: An Introduction to Early Hungarian History. Central European University Press. p. 288. ISBN 978-963-386-572-9.
  207. Chaliand, GŽrard; Wong, R. Bin (17 November 2014). A Global History of War: From Assyria to the Twenty-First Century. Univ of California Press. p. 82. ISBN 978-0-520-28360-2.
  208. Melnyk, Mykola (2022). Byzantium and the Pechenegs: The Historiography of the Problem. BRILL. p. 318. ISBN 978-90-04-50522-3.
  209. Adrianov, Boris V.; Mantellini, Simone (31 December 2013). Ancient Irrigation Systems of the Aral Sea Area: Ancient Irrigation Systems of the Aral Sea Area. Oxbow Books, Limited. p. 238. ISBN 978-1-78297-167-2. "The sedentary ruling stratum (the Kangar) was of Iranian origin" ... "The ruling elite spoke Iranian, whereas most of the population spoke Turkic with a significant admixture of Hunno-Bulgar elements."
  210. Melnyk 2022, p. 318"According to Pritsak, the Pecheneg ruling elite (i.e the Kangar tribes) were Iranian speakers."
  211. Tolstoi V.P. Origin of the Karakalpak people//KSIE, Moscow, 1947. p.75
  212. Tang, Li; Winkler, Dietmar W. (2016). Winds of Jingjiao: Studies on Syriac Christianity in China and Central Asia. LIT Verlag Münster. p. 223. ISBN 978-3-643-90754-7.
  213. Sandman, Erika; Simon, Camille (2016). "Tibetan as a "model language" in the Amdo Sprachbund: evidence from Salar and Wutun". Journal of South Asian Languages and Linguistics. 3 (1): 88. doi:10.1515/jsall-2016-0003. S2CID 146919944. hal-03427697.
  214. Sandman, Erika; Simon, Camille (23 October 2023). "Tibetan as a "model language" in the Amdo Sprachbund: Evidence from Salar and Wutun". Journal of South Asian Languages and Linguistics. 3 (1): 85. doi:10.1515/jsall-2016-0003. S2CID 146919944.
  215. Sandman, Erika. A Grammar of Wutun (PDF) (PhD Thesis. Department of World Cultures thesis). University of Helsinki. p. 15.
  216. Han, Deyan (1999). Mostaert, Antoine (ed.). "The Salar Khazui System". Central Asiatic Journal. 43–44. Ma Jianzhong and Kevin Stuart, translators (2 ed.). O. Harrassowitz: 212.
  217. Böwering, Gerhard; Crone, Patricia; Mirza, Mahan (1 January 2012). The Princeton Encyclopedia of Islamic Political Thought. Princeton University Press. pp. 410–411.
  218. Islamic Central Asia: an anthology of historical sources, Ed. Scott Cameron Levi and Ron Sela, (Indiana University Press, 2010), 83;The Ghaznavids were a dynasty of Turkic slave-soldiers..., "Ghaznavid Dynasty" Encyclopædia Britannica Jonathan M. Bloom, Sheila Blair, The Grove Encyclopedia of Islamic Art and Architecture, Oxford University Press, 2009, Vol.2, p.163, Online Edition, "Turkish dominated mamluk regiments...dynasty of mamluk origin (the GHAZNAVID line) carved out an empire..."
  219. C.E. Bosworth: The Ghaznavids. Edinburgh, 1963
  220. C.E. Bosworth, "Ghaznavids" in Encyclopaedia Iranica, Online Edition 2006
  221. C.E. Bosworth, "Ghaznavids", in Encyclopaedia of Islam, Online Edition; Brill, Leiden; 2006/2007
  222. Encyclopædia Britannica, "Ghaznavid Dynasty", Online Edition 2007
  223. David Christian: A History of Russia, Central Asia, and Mongolia; Blackwell Publishing, 1998; pg. 370: "Though Turkic in origin Alp Tegin, Sebuk Tegin, and Mahmud were all thoroughly Persianized".
  224. J. Meri (Hg.), Medieval Islamic Civilization: An Encyclopedia, "Ghaznavids", London u.a. 2006, p. 294.
  225. Sydney Nettleton Fisher and William Ochsenwald, The Middle East: a history: Volume 1, (McGraw-Hill, 1997).
  226. Meisami, Julie Scott, Persian historiography to the end of the twelfth century, (Edinburgh University Press, 1999), 143.
  227. B. Spuler, "The Disintegration of the Caliphate in the East", in the Cambridge History of Islam, Vol. IA: The Central islamic Lands from Pre-Islamic Times to the First World War, ed. by P.M. Holt, Ann K.S. Lambton, and Bernard Lewis (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1970). pg 147.
  228. * A. C. S. Peacock, Great Seljuk Empire, (Edinburgh University Press, 2015), 1–378.
    • Christian Lange; Songül Mecit, eds., Seljuqs: Politics, Society and Culture (Edinburgh University Press, 2012), 1–328.
    • P.M. Holt; Ann K.S. Lambton, Bernard Lewis, The Cambridge History of Islam (Volume IA): The Central Islamic Lands from Pre-Islamic Times to the First World War, (Cambridge University Press, 1977), 151, 231–234.
  229. Mecit 2014, p. 128.
  230. Peacock & Yıldız 2013, p. 6.
  231. * "Aḥmad of Niǧde's al-Walad al-Shafīq and the Seljuk Past", A. C. S. Peacock, Anatolian Studies, Vol. 54, (2004), 97.
    • Meisami, Julie Scott, Persian Historiography to the End of the Twelfth Century, (Edinburgh University Press, 1999), 143.
    • Encyclopaedia Iranica, "Šahrbānu", Online Edition.
    • Josef W. Meri, Medieval Islamic Civilization: An Encyclopedia, Routledge, 2005, p. 399.
    • Michael Mandelbaum, Central Asia and the World, Council on Foreign Relations (May 1994), p. 79.
    • Jonathan Dewald, Europe 1450 to 1789: Encyclopedia of the Early Modern World, Charles Scribner's Sons, 2004, p. 24.
    • Grousset, Rene, The Empire of the Steppes, (Rutgers University Press, 1991), 161, 164.
    • Wendy M. K. Shaw, Possessors and possessed: museums, archaeology, and the visualization of history in the late Ottoman Empire. University of California Press, 2003, ISBN 0-520-23335-2, ISBN 978-0-520-23335-5; p. 5.
  232. * Jackson, P. (2002). "Review: The History of the Seljuq Turkmens: The History of the Seljuq Turkmens". Journal of Islamic Studies. 13 (1). Oxford Centre for Islamic Studies: 75–76. doi:10.1093/jis/13.1.75.
    • Bosworth, C. E. (2001). 0Notes on Some Turkish Names in Abu 'l-Fadl Bayhaqi's Tarikh-i Mas'udi". Oriens, Vol. 36, 2001 (2001), pp. 299–313.
    • Dani, A. H., Masson, V. M. (Eds), Asimova, M. S. (Eds), Litvinsky, B. A. (Eds), Boaworth, C. E. (Eds). (1999). History of Civilizations of Central Asia. Motilal Banarsidass Publishers (Pvt. Ltd).
    • Hancock, I. (2006). On Romani origins and identity. The Romani Archives and Documentation Center. The University of Texas at Austin.
    • Asimov, M. S., Bosworth, C. E. (eds.). (1998). History of Civilizations of Central Asia, Vol. IV: "The Age of Achievement: AD 750 to the End of the Fifteenth Century", Part One: "The Historical, Social and Economic Setting". Multiple History Series. Paris: UNESCO Publishing.
    • Dani, A. H., Masson, V. M. (Eds), Asimova, M. S. (Eds), Litvinsky, B. A. (Eds), Boaworth, C. E. (Eds). (1999). History of Civilizations of Central Asia. Motilal Banarsidass Publishers (Pvt. Ltd).
  233. Antov, Nikolay (28 December 2017). The Ottoman 'Wild West': The Balkan Frontier in the Fifteenth and Sixteenth Centuries. Cambridge University Press. pp. 15–18. ISBN 978-1-316-86553-8.
  234. Formica, Piero (5 April 2017). Entrepreneurial Renaissance: Cities Striving Towards an Era of Rebirth and Revival. Springer. p. 18. ISBN 978-3-319-52660-7.
  235. Blair, Ann; Duguid, Paul; Goeing, Anja-Silvia; Grafton, Anthony (26 January 2021). Information: A Historical Companion. Princeton University Press. p. 36. ISBN 978-0-691-17954-4.
  236. Peter B.Golden (2011) Central Asia in World History, p.115
  237. Soucek, Svat. A History of Inner Asia (2000), p. 180.
  238. Bregel, Y. The new Uzbek states: Bukhara, Khiva and Khoqand: C. 1750–1886. In N. Di Cosmo, A. Frank, & P. Golden (Eds.), The Cambridge History of Inner Asia: The Chinggisid Age (pp. 392–411). Cambridge: Cambridge University Press 2009
  239. Cambridge History of Iran Volume 7, pp. 2–4
  240. Abbas Amanat, The Pivot of the Universe: Nasir Al-Din Shah Qajar and the Iranian Monarchy, 1831–1896, I. B. Tauris, pp 2–3.
  241. Choueiri, Youssef M., A companion to the history of the Middle East, (Blackwell Ltd., 2005), 231,516.
  242. H. Scheel; Jaschke, Gerhard; H. Braun; Spuler, Bertold; T Koszinowski; Bagley, Frank (1981). Muslim World. Brill Archive. pp. 65, 370. ISBN 978-90-04-06196-5. Retrieved 28 September 2012.
  243. Michael Axworthy. Iran: Empire of the Mind: A History from Zoroaster to the Present Day, Penguin UK, 6 November 2008. ISBN 0-14-190341-4
  244. Fisher et al. 1991, p. 330.
  245. Timothy C. Dowling. Russia at War: From the Mongol Conquest to Afghanistan, Chechnya, and Beyond, pp 728–730 ABC-CLIO, 2 December 2014 ISBN 1-59884-948-4
  246. ^ Encyclopædia Britannica article:Mughal Dynasty
  247. Encyclopædia Britannica Article:Babur
  248. "the Mughal dynasty". PBS. Retrieved 18 March 2015.
  249. "Kamat's Potpourri". Retrieved 18 March 2015.
  250. Babur: Encyclopædia Britannica Article
  251. Moses Parkson, "Ottoman Empire and its past life" p. 98
  252. "The Pechenegs". Archived from the original on 27 October 2009. Retrieved 27 October 2009., Steven Lowe and Dmitriy V. Ryaboy
  253. Cultura Turcica. Türk Kültürünü Araştırma Enstitüsü. 1964. p. 155. "But the only countries that make full use of the economic potential of the Turkish World -with the exception of the only independent country of this area , namely Turkey- are Soviet Russia and China."
  254. "Turkic Council's name changed to Organization of Turkic States". www.aa.com.tr.
  255. ^ Lee & Kuang 2017, p. 228.
  256. ^ Lee & Kuang 2017, p. 199.
  257. Lee & Kuang 2017, p. 228-229.
  258. Lee & Kuang 2017, p. 201.
  259. ^ Lee & Kuang 2017, p. 202.
  260. Göbl 1967, 254; Vondrovec tyre 254
  261. Alram, Michael; Filigenzi, Anna; Kinberger, Michaela; Nell, Daniel; Pfisterer, Matthias; Vondrovec, Klaus. "The Countenance of the other". Pro.geo.univie.ac.at. Kunsthistorisches Museum Vienna. Retrieved 16 July 2017.
  262. Alram, Michael; Filigenzi, Anna; Kinberger, Michaela; Nell, Daniel; Pfisterer, Matthias; Vondrovec, Klaus. "The Countenance of the other (The Coins of the Huns and Western Turks in Central Asia and India) 2012–2013 exhibit: 13. THE TURK SHAHIS IN KABULISTAN". Pro.geo.univie.ac.at. Kunsthistorisches Museum Vienna. Retrieved 16 July 2017.
  263. Golden, Peter (2018). "The Ethnogonic Tales of the Türks". The Medieval History Journal. 21 (2): 314. doi:10.1177/0971945818775373. S2CID 166026934. "Some DNA tests point to the Iranian connections of the Ashina and Ashide,133 highlighting further that the Turks as a whole 'were made up of heterogeneous and somatically dissimilar populations'.134"
  264. Wang, Penglin (2018). Linguistic Mysteries of Ethnonyms in Inner Asia. Lexington. p. 190. ISBN 978-1-4985-3528-1.
  265. Esin, Emel (1980). A History of Pre-Islamic and Early-Islamic Turkish Culture. Istanbul: Ünal Matbaasi. p. 116. "The Chinese sources of the Kök-Türk period describe the turcophone Kirgiz with green eyes and red hair. They must have been in majority Europeoids although intermarriages with the Chinese had begun long ago. The Kök-Türk kagan Mu-kan was also depicted with blue eyes and an elongated ruddy face. Probably as a result of the repeated marriages, the members of the Kök-Türk dynasty (pl. XLVII/a), and particularly Köl Tigin, had frankly Mongoloid features. Perhaps in the hope of finding an occasion to claim rulership over China, or because the high birth of the mother warranted seniority, the Inner Asian monarchs sought alliances165 with dynasties reigning in China."
  266. ^ Lee & Kuang 2017, p. 226.
  267. Lee & Kuang 2017, p. 198.
  268. ^ Lee & Kuang 2017, p. 207.
  269. André Wink (2002). Al-Hind: The Slavic Kings and the Islamic conquest, 11th–13th centuries. BRILL. pp. 68–69. ISBN 978-0-391-04174-5. Even then, the term 'Turk' was still applied in a loose sense, and we find for instance the Magyars (Majghari) or the Rus described as Turks by the same Muslim writers.70 And this is a fact which cannot be explained by assuming that these were people who were under the rule of the Turks, or, in other words, by assuming that the word is always used as a political-territorial ethnonym.71 Tibetans are also frequently confused with Turks, for instance by Al-Biruni, who speaks of 'Turks from Tibet' and 'Turks of Tibetan origin'
  270. Reuven Amitai; Michal Biran (2005). Mongols, Turks, and Others: Eurasian Nomads and the Sedentary World. Brill. pp. 222–223. ISBN 978-90-04-14096-7.: "One of the issues that most occupied the travelers was the physiognomy of the Turks.120 Both mentally and physically, Turks appeared to the Arab authors as very different from themselves.121 The shape of these "broad faced people with small eyes" and their physique impressed the travelers crossing the Eurasian lands." "According to this explanation: Because of the Turks' distance from the course of the sun and from the sun's rising and descending, the snow in their lands is abundant and coldness and humidity dominate it. This caused the bodies of this land's inhabitants to become mellow and their epidermis thick.124 Their sleek hair is spare and its colour is pale with an inclination to red. Due to the cold weather of their surroundings, coldness dominates their temper. In effect, the cold climate breeds abundant flesh. The arctic temperature compresses the heat and makes it visible. This gives them their pink skin. It is noticeable among the people who have bulky bodies and pale colour. Whilst a chilly wind hits them, their faces, lips, fingers and legs became red. This is because while they were warm their blood expanded, and then the cold temperature caused it to amass."
  271. Lee & Kuang (2017) "A Comparative Analysis of Chinese Historical Sources and Y-DNA Studies with Regard to the Early and Medieval Turkic Peoples", Inner Asia 19. p. 207-208 of 197–239 Quote: "The Chinese histories also depict the Turkic-speaking peoples as typically possessing East/Inner Asian physiognomy, as well as occasionally having West Eurasian physiognomy. DNA studies corroborate such characterisation of the Turkic peoples."
  272. Babayar, Gaybulla (2013). "The Imperial Titles on the Coins of the Western Turkic Qaghanate". History of Central Asia in Modern Medieval Studies. Tashkent: Yangi Nashr: 331.
  273. ^ Schlumberger, Daniel (1952). "Le Palais ghaznévide de Lashkari Bazar". Syria. 29 (3/4): 263 & 267. doi:10.3406/syria.1952.4789. ISSN 0039-7946. JSTOR 4390312.
  274. Movses 105.
  275. Lee & Kuang (2017) "A Comparative Analysis of Chinese Historical Sources and Y-DNA Studies with Regard to the Early and Medieval Turkic Peoples", Inner Asia 19. p. 208 of 197–239
  276. Brook 2018, p. 3.
  277. ^ Brook 2018, p. 4.
  278. Brook 2018, p. 5.
  279. ^ Lee & Kuang 2017, p. 204.
  280. Youyang Zazu "vol. 4" txt: "堅昆部落 其人髮黃, 目綠, 赤髭髯"
  281. Xin Tangshu, "vol. 217b" txt: "又有駁馬者,或曰弊剌,曰遏羅支, 人貌多似結骨,而語不相通。" tr: "There are also Piebald-Horse folk, also called either Bila or Eluozhi . peoples' faces much resemble Kyrghyzes', yet the languages are not mutually intelligible."
  282. Xin Tangshu, "vol. 217b", txt: "黠戛斯,古堅昆國也。 或曰居勿,曰結骨。 人皆長大,赤髮、皙面、綠瞳"
  283. Xin Tangshu, "vol. 217b", txt: "以黑髮為不祥。黑瞳者,必曰陵苗裔也"
  284. Brook 2018, p. 3-4.
  285. Lee & Kuang 2017, p. 204-205.
  286. Lee & Kuang 2017, p. 215.
  287. Jaschok, Maria (2013). The history of women's mosques in Chinese Islam: a mosque of their own. Taylor and Francis. p. 73. ISBN 978-1-136-83880-4. ""....Qincha have yellow hair and blue eyes' (Ming Lu Ji Jue Fu Li, Vol. 6, 1969 copy)."
  288. Weiner, Michael (2021). Routledge Handbook of Race and Ethnicity in Asia. Abingdon, Oxon: Routledge. p. 200. ISBN 978-1-351-24668-2. "To illustrate the complexity of the Ming-Muslim relationship, consider a legal statute" "...Kipchaks have light hair and blue eyes. Their appearance is vile and peculiar, so there are those who do not wish to marry them." (Da Ming lü jijie fuli 6.36b)
  289. Lee & Kuang (2017). p. 213, 217–218, 225–226
  290. Vryonis, Speros Jr (1971). The Decline of Medieval Hellenism in Asia Minor and the Process of Islamization from the Eleventh through the Fifteenth Century. Berkeley: University of California Press. p. 278.
  291. Polat, Orhan. "About :: TURKSOY". turksoy.org. Retrieved 17 May 2016.
  292. Polat, Orhan. "Cultural Capital of the Turkic World 2016: Sheki :: TURKSOY". turksoy.org. Retrieved 17 May 2016.
  293. "Uzbekistan Officially Applies For Membership In Turkic Council". Radio Free Europe/Radio Liberty. 13 September 2019.
  294. "Press Release of the Sixth Summit of the Turkic Council". Turkic Council. Retrieved 4 September 2018.
  295. "Turkic Council reforms into Organization of Turkic States". TRT World. 13 November 2021.
  296. "Turkish Cyprus gains Organization of Turkic States observer status". Daily Sabah. 11 November 2022. Retrieved 11 November 2022.
  297. "Organization of Turkic States pledges observer status for Turkish Cyprus – Türkiye News". Hürriyet Daily News. 11 November 2022. Retrieved 11 November 2022.
  298. Substantial numbers (possibly several millions) of maghrebis of the former Ottoman colonies in North Africa are of Ottoman Turkish descent. Finnish Tatars
  299. The Karakalpak Gene Pool (Spencer Wells, 2001); and discussion and conclusions at www.karakalpak.com/genetics.html
  300. ""Şeyxülislam qeyd edib ki, Azərbaycanda 35 faiz sünni, 65 faiz isə şiə məzhəbinə mənsub…"".
  301. "Religion" (PDF). Administrative Department of the President of the Republic of Azerbaijan — Presidential Library. Archived (PDF) from the original on 23 November 2011. Религия. Управление делами Президента Азербайджанской Республики — Президентская библиотека
  302. ^ "The Horseback Kitchen of Central Asia". Food on the Move. Oxford Symposium on Food and Cookery. 1996. ISBN 978-0-907325-79-6. Retrieved 16 July 2018.
  303. "History of Buddhism among the Turkic People". studybuddhism.com. Retrieved 3 December 2022.
  304. "Buddhism history in Kazakhstan · · "Kazakhstan History" portal". edu.e-history.kz. Archived from the original on 20 September 2022. Retrieved 15 September 2022.
  305. "关于回鹘摩尼教史的几个问题". Retrieved 18 March 2015.
  306. "元明时期的新疆藏传佛教". Archived from the original on 4 March 2016. Retrieved 18 March 2015.
  307. "回鹘文《陶师本生》及其特点". Archived from the original on 6 May 2013. Retrieved 18 March 2015.
  308. "回鹘观音信仰考". Archived from the original on 22 March 2012. Retrieved 3 April 2011.
  309. "回鶻彌勒信仰考". Retrieved 18 March 2015.
  310. Minahan, James; Wendel, Peter T. (2002). Encyclopedia of the Stateless Nations: S-Z. Greenwood Publishing Group. p. 1937. ISBN 978-0-313-32384-3.
  311. Turkic peoples' road to Islam. Daily Sabah. Retrieved 21 May 2024
  312. Menz, Astrid. (2007). The Gagauz Between Christianity and Turkishness. 10.5771/9783956506925-123.
  313. ^ Cole, Jeffrey (2011). Ethnic Groups of Europe: An Encyclopedia. ABC-CLIO. p. 74. ISBN 978-1-59884-302-6.
  314. Lipka, Michael (22 May 2022). "The Gagauz: 'Christian Turks' between two worlds". TRT World.
  315. Guide to Russia:Chuvash Archived 1 May 2005 at the Wayback Machine
  316. "景教艺术在西域之发现". Retrieved 18 March 2015.
  317. 高昌回鹘与环塔里木多元文化的融合 Archived 17 August 2011 at the Wayback Machine
  318. "唐代中围景教与景教本部教会的关系" (PDF). Archived from the original (PDF) on 30 November 2011.
  319. "景教在西域的传播". Archived from the original on 4 March 2016. Retrieved 18 March 2015.
  320. "新闻_星岛环球网". Archived from the original on 30 October 2012. Retrieved 18 March 2015.
  321. "7–11 世紀景教在陸上絲綢之路的傳播" (PDF). Archived from the original (PDF) on 30 December 2011. Retrieved 3 April 2011.
  322. Akiner, Shirin (1986). Islamic peoples of the Soviet Union: with an appendix on the non-Muslim Turkic peoples of the Soviet Union: an historical and statistical handbook (2nd ed.). London: KPI. pp. 431–432. ISBN 0-7103-0188-X.<
  323. Akiner, Shirin (1986). Islamic Peoples Of The Soviet Union. Routledge. p. 100. ISBN 978-1-136-14274-1.
  324. Yemelianova, Galina M. (2002). Russia and Islam: A Historical Survey. Palgrave. pp. 36–41. ISBN 0-333-68354-4.
  325. Ashakeeva, Gulaiym; Najibullah, Farangis (February 2012). "Kyrgyz Religious Hatred Trial Throws Spotlight On Ancient Creed". Radio Free Europe/Radio Liberty. Retrieved 18 April 2019.
  326. "Religion in Kazakhstan". WorldAtlas. Retrieved 18 April 2019.
  327. Roberts, Sean R. (8 September 2020). The War on the Uyghurs: China's Internal Campaign against a Muslim Minority. Princeton University Press. p. 8. ISBN 978-0-691-20221-1.
  328. Frankel, James (17 June 2021). Islam in China. Bloomsbury Publishing. p. 77. ISBN 978-0-7556-3884-0.
  329. Robert Dankoff (2008). From Mahmud Kaşgari to Evliya Çelebi. Isis Press. p. 81. ISBN 978-975-428-366-2.
  330. ^ Dankoff, Robert (January–March 1975). "Kāšġarī on the Beliefs and Superstitions of the Turks". Journal of the American Oriental Society. 95 (1): 68–80. doi:10.2307/599159. JSTOR 599159.
  331. Hamilton Alexander Rosskeen Gibb; Bernard Lewis; Johannes Hendrik Kramers; Charles Pellat; Joseph Schacht (1998). The Encyclopaedia of Islam. Brill. p. 689.
  332. Robert Dankoff (2008). From Mahmud Kaşgari to Evliya Çelebi. Isis Press. p. 79. ISBN 978-975-428-366-2.
  333. Mehmet Fuat Köprülü; Gary Leiser; Robert Dankoff (2006). Early Mystics in Turkish Literature. Psychology Press. pp. 147–. ISBN 978-0-415-36686-1.
  334. Ševčenko, Ihor; Sysyn, Frank E., eds. (1980). "Harvard Ukrainian Studies Eucharisterion: Essays Presented to Omeljan Pritsak on his Sixtieth Birthday by his Colleagues and Students" (PDF). Harvard Ukrainian Studies. III/IV 1979–1980. Cambridge, Massachusetts: Harvard University: 160. ISSN 0363-5570. Archived from the original (PDF) on 18 November 2015.
  335. Harvard Ukrainian Research Institute (1980). Harvard Ukrainian studies. Harvard Ukrainian Research Institute. p. 160.
  336. Robert Dankoff (2008). From Mahmud Kaşgari to Evliya Çelebi. Isis Press. p. 79. ISBN 978-975-428-366-2.
  337. Uluslararası Türk Kültürü Kongresi Bildirileri. Vol. 6. Atatürk Kültür Merkezi. 2009. p. 2128.
  338. Mayor, Adrienne (22 September 2014). The Amazons: Lives and Legends of Warrior Women across the Ancient World. Princeton University Press. ISBN 978-1-4008-6513-0.
  339. Burak, Sansal. "Turkish Jereed (Javelin)". All About Turkey. Retrieved 16 November 2016.
  340. Christensen, karen; Levinson, David (1999). Encyclopedia of World Sport: From Ancient Times to the Present. Oxford University Press. ISBN 978-0-19-513195-6.
  341. "ДЖИГИТ". dic.academic.ru (in Russian).

Sources

Further reading

  • Amanjolov A.S., "History of the Ancient Turkic Script", Almaty, "Mektep", 2003, ISBN 9965-16-204-2
  • Baichorov S.Ya., "Ancient Turkic runic monuments of the Europe", Stavropol, 1989 (in Russian).
  • Baskakov, N.A. 1962, 1969. Introduction to the study of the Turkic languages. Moscow (in Russian).
  • Beckwith, Christopher I. (2009): Empires of the Silk Road: A History of Central Eurasia from the Bronze Age to the Present. Princeton: Princeton University Press. ISBN 978-0-691-13589-2.
  • Boeschoten, Hendrik & Lars Johanson. 2006. Turkic languages in contact. Turcologica, Bd. 61. Wiesbaden: Harrassowitz. ISBN 3-447-05212-0.
  • Chavannes, Édouard (1900): Documents sur les Tou-kiue (Turcs) occidentaux. Paris, Librairie d'Amérique et d'Orient. Reprint: Taipei. Cheng Wen Publishing Co. 1969.
  • Clausen, Gerard. 1972. An etymological dictionary of pre-thirteenth-century Turkish. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
  • Deny, Jean et al. 1959–1964. Philologiae Turcicae Fundamenta. Wiesbaden: Harrassowitz.
  • Eliot, Charles Norton Edgcumbe (1911). "Turks" . Encyclopædia Britannica. Vol. 27 (11th ed.). pp. 468–473.
  • Findley, Carter Vaughn. 2005. The Turks in World History. Oxford University Press. ISBN 0-19-516770-8; ISBN 0-19-517726-6 (pbk.)
  • Golden, Peter B. An introduction to the history of the Turkic peoples: Ethnogenesis and state-formation in medieval and early modern Eurasia and the Middle East (Otto Harrassowitz (Wiesbaden) 1992) ISBN 3-447-03274-X
  • Peter B. Golden (1992). An Introduction to the History of the Turkic Peoples: Ethnogenesis and State-formation in Medieval and Early Modern Eurasia and the Middle East. O. Harrassowitz. ISBN 978-3-447-03274-2.
  • Heywood, Colin. The Turks (The Peoples of Europe) (Blackwell 2005), ISBN 978-0-631-15897-4.
  • Hostler, Charles Warren. The Turks of Central Asia (Greenwood Press, November 1993), ISBN 0-275-93931-6.
  • Ishjatms N., "Nomads In Eastern Central Asia", in the "History of civilizations of Central Asia", Volume 2, UNESCO Publishing, 1996, ISBN 92-3-102846-4.
  • Johanson, Lars & Éva Agnes Csató (ed.). 1998. The Turkic languages. London: Routledge. ISBN 0-415-08200-5.
  • Johanson, Lars. 1998. "The history of Turkic." In: Johanson & Csató, pp. 81–125. Classification of Turkic languages Archived 8 April 2011 at the Wayback Machine
  • Johanson, Lars. 1998. "Turkic languages." In: Encyclopædia Britannica. CD 98. Encyclopædia Britannica Online, 5 September. 2007. Turkic languages: Linguistic history.
  • Karatay, Osman. The Genesis of the Turks: An Ethno-Linguistic Inquiry into the Prehistory of Central Eurasia. United Kingdom, Cambridge Scholars Publishing., 2022.
  • Kyzlasov I.L., "Runic Scripts of Eurasian Steppes", Moscow, Eastern Literature, 1994, ISBN 5-02-017741-5.
  • Lebedynsky, Iaroslav. (2006). Les Saces: Les « Scythes » d'Asie, VIII siècle apr. J.-C. Editions Errance, Paris. ISBN 2-87772-337-2.
  • Malov S.E., "Monuments of the ancient Turkic inscriptions. Texts and research", M.-L., 1951 (in Russian).
  • Mukhamadiev A., "Turanian Writing", in "Problems Of Lingo-Ethno-History Of The Tatar People", Kazan, 1995 (Азгар Мухамадиев, "Туранская Письменность", "Проблемы лингвоэтноистории татарского народа", Казань, 1995) (in Russian).
  • Menges, K. H. 1968. The Turkic languages and peoples: An introduction to Turkic studies. Wiesbaden: Harrassowitz.
  • Öztopçu, Kurtuluş. 1996. Dictionary of the Turkic languages: English, Azerbaijani, Kazakh, Kyrgyz, Tatar, Turkish, Turkmen, Uighur, Uzbek. London: Routledge. ISBN 0-415-14198-2
  • Alpamysh, H.B. Paksoy: Central Asian Identity under Russian Rule (Hartford: AACAR, 1989)
  • H. B. Paksoy (1989). Alpamysh: Central Asian Identity Under Russian Rule. AACAR. ISBN 978-0-9621379-9-0.
  • Samoilovich, A. N. 1922. Some additions to the classification of the Turkish languages. Petrograd.
  • Schönig, Claus. 1997–1998. "A new attempt to classify the Turkic languages I-III." Turkic Languages 1:1.117–133, 1:2.262–277, 2:1.130–151.
  • Vasiliev D.D. Graphical fund of Turkic runiform writing monuments in Asian areal. М., 198 (in Russian).
  • Vasiliev D.D. Corpus of Turkic runiform monuments in the basin of Enisei. М., 1983 (in Russian).
  • Voegelin, C.F. & F.M. Voegelin. 1977. Classification and index of the World's languages. New York: Elsevier.

External links

Turkic peoples
Peoples
Azerbaijani communities
Kazakh communities
Kyrgyz communities
Turkmen communities
Turkish communities
Turkic peoples
in Uzbekistan
Turkic minorities
in China
Turkic minorities
in Crimea
Turkic minorities
in Iran
Turkic minorities in
Russia
Turkic minorities in
Mongolia
Turkic minorities in
Afghanistan
Turkic minorities in
Europe
(exc. Russia)
Extinct Turkic groups
Others
Diasporas
Central Asian (i.e. Turkmeni, Afghani and Iranian) Turkmens, distinct from Levantine (i.e. Iraqi and Syrian) Turkmen/Turkoman minorities, who mostly adhere to an Ottoman-Turkish heritage and identity. In traditional areas of Turkish settlement (i.e. former Ottoman territories).
Turkic topics
Languages
Alphabets
Peoples
Extinct Turkic groups
Politics
Origins
Locations
Sovereign states
Autonomous areas
Studies
Religions
Traditional sports
Organizations
These are traditional areas of settlement; the Turkic group has been living in the listed country/region for centuries and should not be confused with modern diasporas.
State with limited international recognition.
Categories: